Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n day_n great_a holy_a 12,790 5 4.8317 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A19503 Pathmos: or, A commentary on the Reuelation of Saint Iohn diuided into three seuerall prophecies. The first prophecie contained in the fourth, fift, sixt and seuenth chapters. By Mr. William Cowper, Bishop of Galloway. Cowper, William, 1568-1619. 1619 (1619) STC 5931; ESTC S108985 231,291 374

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

but_o shadow_n of_o those_o better_a which_o be_v above_o the_o lord_n strengthen_v our_o faith_n to_o believe_v always_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v out_o of_o this_o ground_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n not_o find_v one_o creature_n on_o earth_n meet_v to_o represent_v that_o variable_a good_a which_o be_v in_o angel_n do_v join_v four_o of_o the_o best_a together_o which_o yet_o all_o do_v come_v far_o short_a of_o the_o excellency_n of_o angel_n verse_n 8._o and_o the_o four_o beast_n have_v each_o of_o they_o six_o wing_n and_o they_o be_v full_a of_o eye_n within_o and_o they_o rest_v not_o day_n and_o night_n say_v holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n almighty_a who_o be_v and_o be_v and_o be_v to_o come_v the_o last_o of_o their_o property_n they_o be_v say_v to_o angil_n have_v six_o wing_n every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o what_o end_n wing_n be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o isaiah_n do_v tell_v we_o with_o two_o they_o cover_v their_o face_n with_o two_o they_o cover_v their_o 2._o lord_n foot_n and_o with_o two_o they_o fly_v the_o wing_n wherewith_o they_o co●…er_v their_o face_n be_v first_o a_o humble_a estimation_n of_o themselves_o next_o a_o reverend_a and_o great_a estimation_n of_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o the_o lord_n their_o god._n they_o acknowledge_v his_o glory_n great_a than_o that_o they_o can_v behold_v it_o they_o be_v near_o the_o throne_n but_o far_a from_o pride_n among_o man_n we_o use_v to_o say_v that_o familiarity_n engender_v contempt_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o lord_n they_o who_o be_v most_o familiar_a with_o he_o do_v most_o of_o all_o reverence_n and_o fear_v he_o the_o only_a cause_n why_o man_n be_v so_o bold_a to_o dishonour_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o use_v his_o name_n without_o any_o reverence_n be_v for_o that_o they_o be_v stranger_n from_o he_o they_o know_v he_o not_o and_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o his_o majesty_n hitherto_o tend_v that_o similitude_n of_o saint_n chrysostome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 26._o etc._n etc._n for_o even_o as_o the_o quick_a our_o sight_n be_v the_o better_a humble_a we_o learn_v and_o perceive_v how_o far_o we_o be_v distant_a from_o the_o heaven_n whereas_o to_o a_o dim_a eye_n the_o heaven_n seem_v to_o be_v near-hand_n and_o hard_o upon_o it_o even_o so_o the_o more_o we_o excel_v in_o virtue_n and_o holiness_n the_o more_o we_o perceive_v what_o a_o great_a difference_n be_v between_o the_o lord_n and_o we_o yea_o his_o best_a creature_n be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o his_o glorious_a majesty_n let_v this_o serve_v for_o a_o warn_n to_o these_o presumptuous_a merit_n pharisaical_a spirit_n semipelagian_a papist_n who_o dare_v stand_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o glory_n of_o their_o fasting_n of_o their_o alm_n of_o their_o merit_n of_o their_o justification_n by_o their_o work_n and_o of_o their_o perfect_a observance_n of_o the_o law_n the_o holy_a angel_n cover_v their_o face_n and_o acknowledge_v their_o insufficiency_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o thou_o vile_a worm_n of_o the_o earth_n will_v glory_v of_o thy_o sufficiency_n vae_fw-la generationi_fw-la huic_fw-la miserae_fw-la cui_fw-la sufficere_fw-la videtur_fw-la ingratitude_n insufficientia_fw-la sua_fw-la woe_n be_v to_o this_o miserable_a sort_n of_o people_n to_o who_o their_o insufficiency_n seem_v sufficient_a it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o part_n of_o true_a philosophy_n for_o a_o man_n to_o know_v himself_o and_o only_o he_o know_v himself_o best_a who_o esteem_v himself_o to_o be_v nothing_o abraham_n call_v himself_o dust_n &_o ash_n 18._o and_o david_n esteem_v himself_o to_o be_v but_o a_o worm_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o all_o saint_n 26._o say_v saint_n chrysostome_n after_o this_o same_o manner_n abase_v and_o cast_v down_o themselves_o but_o they_o who_o with_o the_o apostate_n angel_n will_v exalt_v themselves_o will_v contend_v with_o michael_n and_o presume_v above_o that_o which_o indeed_o they_o be_v let_v they_o here_o see_v of_o what_o spirit_n they_o be_v the_o two_o wing_n wherewith_o they_o fly_v note_v first_o fly_v their_o sublimity_n they_o be_v no_o creep_a but_o fly_v creature_n under_o the_o law_n profane_a worldling_n thing_n be_v figure_v by_o unclean_a beast_n that_o creep_v on_o the_o earth_n with_o all_o four_o they_o be_v curse_v with_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o serpent_n they_o lick_v the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o christian_n shall_v be_v like_a unto_o angel_n not_o creep_v but_o fly_v creature_n a_o bird_n so_o long_o obey_v as_o it_o be_v fly_v above_o be_v in_o no_o danger_n of_o the_o snare_n many_o snare_n have_v satan_n that_o crafty_a hunter_n lay_v for_o we_o the_o best_a way_n to_o eschew_v they_o be_v that_o our_o heart_n frequent_o fly_v upward_o towards_o the_o lord_n next_o their_o willing_a readiness_n to_o execute_v the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n without_o delay_n s._n bernard_n make_v 4._o the_o two_o wing_n of_o these_o angel_n to_o be_v knowledge_n and_o devotion_n these_o be_v also_o good_a for_o we_o to_o fly_v withal_o levat_fw-la cognitionis_fw-la ala_fw-la sed_fw-la sola_fw-la non_fw-la sufficit_fw-la the_o wing_n of_o knowledge_n lift_v we_o up_o but_o it_o alone_o be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o the_o bird_n that_o have_v but_o one_o wing_n the_o more_o it_o strive_v to_o fly_v the_o more_o it_o fall_v rvit_fw-la citius_fw-la quae_fw-la una_fw-la tantum_fw-la ala_fw-la volare_fw-la contendit_fw-la fall_v so_o he_o that_o have_v knowledge_n without_o devotion_n the_o more_o he_o seek_v to_o ascend_v the_o more_o he_o fail_v natural_a philosopher_n may_v stand_v for_o a_o example_n 1._o who_o know_v god_n do_v not_o glorify_v he_o but_o vanish_v in_o their_o own_o cogitation_n and_o become_v fool_n and_o let_v devotion_n again_o be_v never_o so_o zealous_a and_o fervent_a yet_o without_o knowledge_n it_o can_v carry_v we_o upward_o zelus_n absque_fw-la scienti●…_n quo_fw-la vehementius_fw-la irruit_fw-la eo_fw-la gra●…ius_fw-la corruit_fw-la for_o zeal_n without_o knowledge_n the_o hot_a it_o be_v the_o more_o hindersome_a it_o be_v the_o two_o wing_n wherewith_o they_o cover_v their_o modesty_n foot_n figure_n their_o sanctity_n and_o modesty_n they_o be_v conversant_a with_o man_n according_a as_o god_n employ_v they_o but_o communicate_v not_o with_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n they_o defile_v not_o their_o foot_n with_o our_o pollution_n but_o have_v they_o always_o cover_v as_o the_o sun_n give_v his_o light_n to_o most_o filthy_a place_n but_o participate_v not_o of_o their_o uncleanness_n so_o be_v it_o with_o angel_n but_o alas_o far_o be_v we_o from_o this_o perfection_n it_o be_v a_o difficile_a thing_n to_o live_v in_o the_o company_n of_o profane_a man_n and_o not_o be_v infect_v by_o they_o if_o we_o be_v not_o burn_v with_o their_o fire_n hardly_o shall_v we_o escape_v unblack_v with_o their_o smoke_n the_o other_o wing_n for_o cover_v their_o foot_n be_v their_o modesty_n whereby_o they_o dimit_v themselves_o to_o our_o capacity_n they_o appear_v with_o body_n and_o colour_n white_a sprickled_a and_o red_a have_v indeed_o neither_o 1._o body_n nor_o colour_n yet_o be_v man_n astonish_v and_o confound_v at_o their_o low_a apparition_n so_o far_o be_v we_o degenerate_a from_o our_o first_o estate_n that_o we_o can_v now_o abide_v the_o most_o modest_a and_o base_a apparition_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o they_o cease_v not_o day_n nor_o night_n say_v in_o god_n the_o last_o place_n we_o have_v their_o function_n describe_v which_o be_v a_o continual_a and_o uncessant_a praise_v of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o weary_a be_v always_o delight_v with_o new_a matter_n of_o joy_n flow_v from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o as_o many_o eye_n as_o they_o have_v they_o can_v never_o comprehend_v that_o infinite_a goodness_n which_o be_v in_o he_o new_a sight_n make_v they_o always_o to_o renew_v praise_n unto_o god_n and_o in_o this_o they_o stand_v as_o pattern_n unto_o we_o teach_v we_o to_o practice_v these_o precept_n rejoice_v 18._o evermore_o pray_v continual_o in_o all_o thing_n give_v thanks_o we_o shall_v always_o pray_v for_o we_o never_o want_v cause_n we_o shall_v always_o give_v thanks_o for_o if_o we_o can_v observe_v it_o we_o never_o want_v matter_n prayer_n &_o praise_n two_o be_v two_o excellent_a part_n of_o divine_a worship_n but_o of_o the_o two_o praise_n be_v the_o most_o heavenly_a and_o angelic_a virtue_n in_o prayer_n a_o man_n respect_v himself_o seek_v from_o god_n that_o which_o he_o can_v want_v but_o in_o praise_n man_n respect_v god_n give_v unto_o the_o lord_n that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o he_o again_o prayer_n pertain_v to_o this_o life_n principal_o et_fw-la est_fw-la eg●…ntium_fw-la ac_fw-la miserorum_fw-la praise_n pertain_v to_o the_o life_n to_o come_v et_fw-la est_fw-la beatorum_fw-la ac_fw-la glori●…icatorum_fw-la let_v we_o therefore_o learn_v of_o angel_n to_o
to_o believe_v god_n his_o word_n we_o be_v strong_a to_o resist_v satan_n and_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o overcome_v we_o but_o if_o we_o forget_v the_o counsel_n of_o his_o word_n we_o easy_o become_v a_o prey_n to_o our_o adversary_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v call_v to_o be_v king_n to_o our_o god_n and_o hope_v to_o reign_v for_o ever_o with_o he_o in_o heaven_n we_o will_v think_v shame_n to_o render_v ourselves_o captive_n to_o satan_n let_v we_o look_v back_o to_o our_o first_o creation_n animal_n es_a o_fw-la homo_fw-la 10._o principatu_fw-la decoratum_fw-la ut_fw-la quid_fw-la seruis_fw-la affectibus_fw-la princeps_fw-la creaturarum_fw-la constitutus_fw-la es_fw-la &_o dignitatem_fw-la etc._n tuam_fw-la abiicis_fw-la thou_o be_v a_o creature_n o_o man_n in_o thy_o first_o creation_n decore_v with_o princely_a power_n why_o serve_v thou_o thy_o affection_n thou_o be_v make_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o creature_n and_o cast_v away_o thy_o own_o dignity_n will_v we_o again_o look_v forward_o to_o our_o future_a glorification_n non_fw-la sperare_fw-la potest_fw-la coeleste_fw-la regnum_fw-la 11._o cui_fw-la supra_fw-la propria_fw-la membra_fw-la regnare_fw-la non_fw-la datur_fw-la what_o hope_n can_v he_o have_v to_o enjoy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n who_o reign_v not_o over_o his_o own_o member_n upon_o earth_n thus_o our_o first_o creation_n our_o present_a vocation_n our_o future_a glorification_n all_o of_o they_o require_v of_o we_o that_o like_o spiritual_a king_n we_o shall_v subdue_v and_o overcome_v the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n he_o that_o overcom_v shall_v sit_v 21._o with_o i_o in_o my_o throne_n our_o priesthood_n again_o consist_v in_o offer_v up_o god_n sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o these_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o three_o sort_n first_o that_o we_o offer_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v the_o great_a sacrifice_n without_o which_o the_o god_n lord_n will_v accept_v nothing_o from_o we_o my_o son_n give_v i_o thy_o heart_n next_o that_o we_o offer_v up_o our_o body_n unto_o he_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o good_n god_n that_o you_o give_v up_o your_o body_n a_o live_a sacrifice_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n which_o be_v your_o reasonable_a serve_v of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v do_v when_o we_o make_v the_o member_n of_o our_o body_n weapon_n of_o righteousness_n 13._o to_o god_n these_o be_v two_o then_o cor_n &_o corpus_fw-la the_o heart_n and_o the_o body_n the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o service_n of_o they_o both_o three_o that_o we_o offer_v our_o good_n unto_o he_o as_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o saint_n do_v require_v it_o and_o this_o three_o sacrifice_n willing_o follow_v where_o the_o other_o two_o go_v before_o my_o son_n honour_n god_n with_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o 9_o all_o thy_o increase_n to_o do_v good_a and_o to_o distribute_v forget_v 13._o not_o for_o with_o such_o sacrifice_n god_n be_v please_v but_o now_o gene●…ation_n the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v lock_v up_o and_o their_o hand_n be_v link_v they_o fear_v to_o give_v lest_o they_o have_v not_o enough_o for_o themselves_o and_o the_o poor_a also_o but_o it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o thy_o portion_n shall_v never_o perish_v by_o give_v out_o in_o ordinary_a charity_n to_o the_o poor_a quicksand_n quid_fw-la in_o pauperes_fw-la contuleris_fw-la in_fw-la coeli_fw-la thesauris_fw-la 〈◊〉_d reconditum_fw-la in●…enies_fw-la whatever_o thou_o bestow_v on_o the_o poor_a thou_o shall_v find_v it_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o heavenly_a treasure_n clementia_n dum_fw-la licet_fw-la clementiam_fw-la acquire_v by_o show_v mercy_n when_o thou_o may_v dominicam_fw-la purchase_v mercy_n to_o thyself_o these_o be_v all_o agreeable_a to_o holy_a scripture_n make_v thou_o friend_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v you_o into_o the_o everlasting_a tabernacle_n say_v our_o saviour_n so_o also_o the_o apostle_n that_o by_o distribute_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a man_n lay_v up_o in_o store_n for_o themselves_o a_o good_a 19_o foundation_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o we_o shall_v reign_v upon_o earth_n upon_o this_o here_o place_n the_o chiliast_n ground_n their_o error_n that_o after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o saint_n shall_v dwell_v on_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n at_o which_o time_n that_o prophecy_n and_o other_o like_v it_o shall_v be_v sulfil_v the_o 11._o meek_a shall_v possess_v the_o earth_n and_o with_o this_o opinion_n 5._o many_o worthy_a father_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v overtake_v the_o turk_n also_o dream_v of_o a_o earthly_a paradise_n but_o let_v they_o pass_v for_o understand_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n earth_n of_o this_o place_n we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o the_o earth_n in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v sometime_o take_v for_o the_o man_n that_o be_v in_o it_o david_n call_v they_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n these_o be_v they_o who_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v have_v their_o portion_n in_o this_o life_n saint_n john_n common_o call_v they_o 14._o in_o this_o book_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n these_o man_n be_v enemy_n to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o persecute_v they_o they_o with_o all_o their_o power_n they_o account_v they_o the_o off-scouring_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o unworthy_a to_o dwell_v in_o it_o but_o the_o lord_n at_o length_n shall_v exalt_v his_o saint_n and_o their_o enemy_n shall_v be_v make_v their_o footstool_n yea_o the_o sole_n of_o their_o foot_n the_o lord_n shall_v lift_v up_o above_o the_o head_n of_o their_o great_a enemy_n for_o the_o wicked_a shall_v stand_v still_o upon_o the_o earth_n when_o the_o godly_a shall_v be_v ravish_v and_o catch_v up_o into_o the_o air_n yea_o the_o wicked_a themselves_o 17._o shall_v see_v it_o and_o shall_v be_v vex_v with_o horrible_a fear_n when_o they_o see_v the_o man_n honour_v who_o they_o despise_v and_o shall_v say_v within_o themselves_o this_o be_v he_o who_o sometime_o we_o have_v in_o derision_n we_o 5._o soole_v think_v his_o life_n madness_n and_o his_o end_n without_o honour_n how_o be_v he_o count_v among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o his_o portion_n be_v among_o saint_n now_o for_o this_o benefit_n which_o the_o saint_n be_v sure_a to_o enjoy_v to_o wit_n their_o final_a victory_n and_o glorious_a exaltation_n above_o all_o their_o enemy_n they_o here_o praise_v the_o lord_n and_o so_o have_v his_o majesty_n most_o judicious_o expound_v this_o difficult_a place_n we_o shall_v reign_v over_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o last_o and_o general_a judgement_n and_o this_o exposition_n be_v both_o very_a comfortable_a for_o saint_n now_o lie_v under_o the_o oppression_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o agree_v well_o with_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n otherwise_o if_o we_o take_v the_o word_n proper_o for_o element_n this_o same_o earth_n wherein_o we_o sojourn_v than_o s._n peter_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o have_v to_o look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n they_o 3._o lose_v their_o original_a virtue_n and_o beauty_n by_o our_o transgression_n and_o shall_v receive_v it_o again_o and_o more_o at_o our_o restitution_n so_o be_v we_o teach_v by_o s._n paul_n the_o 8._o fervent_a desire_n of_o the_o creature_n wait_v when_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v reucale_v for_o then_o the_o creature_n also_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o then_o both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n renew_v shall_v be_v the_o proper_a possession_n of_o saint_n renew_v where_o if_o any_o man_n demand_n to_o what_o use_n shall_v this_o earth_n day_n and_o visible_a heaven_n serve_v in_o that_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n the_o answer_n be_v we_o shall_v know_v it_o when_o we_o shall_v see_v it_o for_o if_o the_o lord_n will_v restore_v they_o to_o stand_v as_o monument_n and_o witness_n of_o that_o first_o goodness_n which_o he_o show_v we_o in_o the_o creation_n and_o we_o lose_v in_o the_o transgression_n and_o he_o have_v restore_v again_o with_o much_o more_o in_o our_o redemption_n who_o can_v say_v against_o it_o but_o lest_o we_o seem_v to_o pry_v within_o the_o ark_n let_v our_o care_n be_v rather_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o than_o beforehand_o curious_o to_o inquire_v of_o it_o that_o which_o now_o we_o can_v understand_v and_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o answer_n which_o photinus_n the_o predecessor_n of_o irenaeus_n give_v to_o the_o proconsul_n when_o he_o demand_v of_o he_o who_o god_n be_v he_o answer_v et_fw-la tu_fw-la si_fw-la dignus_fw-la ●…ueris_fw-la videbis_fw-la proconsul_n even_o thou_o if_o thou_o be_v worthy_a or_o meet_v for_o it_o shall_v see_v he_o so_o we_o if_o we_o be_v renew_v man_n shall_v know_v to_o what_o use_n in_o that_o day_n these_o new_a heaven_n and_o new_a
but_o the_o earnestness_n and_o great_a care_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v to_o conserve_v his_o saint_n he_o be_v the_o watchman_n of_o israel_n who_o neither_o slamber_n nor_o sleep_n he_o cry_v for_o we_o when_o we_o creature_n can_v cry_v for_o ourselves_o and_o again_o his_o absolute_a authority_n over_o the_o creature_n be_v hereby_o declare_v unto_o we_o he_o command_v and_o forbid_v as_o he_o please_v &_o what_o he_o will_v be_v do_v this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o faith_n of_o that_o centurion_n so_o high_o commend_v by_o jesus_n acknowledge_v in_o our_o lord_n speak_v the_o 9_o word_n only_o and_o my_o servant_n shall_v be_v heal_v for_o i_o have_v also_o soldier_n under_o i_o and_o i_o say_v to_o one_o go_v and_o he_o go_v and_o to_o another_o come_v and_o he_o come_v and_o to_o my_o servant_n do_v this_o and_o he_o do_v it_o verse_n 3._o say_v hurt_v you_o not_o the_o earth_n nor_o the_o sea_n nor_o the_o tree_n till_o we_o have_v seal_v the_o servant_n of_o our_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n now_o follow_v the_o commandment_n itself_o the_o inhibition_n tenor_n of_o it_o be_v let_v the_o creature_n still_o continue_v in_o their_o natural_a course_n change_v they_o not_o dissolve_v not_o the_o world_n for_o the_o inferior_a part_n of_o the_o universe_n be_v here_o put_v for_o the_o whole_a and_o how_o long_o he_o will_v have_v the_o world_n to_o continue_v be_v declare_v till_o we_o have_v seal_v the_o servant_n of_o our_o god_n how_o saint_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o fellowship_n uphold_v it_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o it_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o fist_n seal_v if_o for_o the_o saint_n sake_n he_o will_v not_o let_v the_o earth_n to_o be_v hurt_v far_o less_o will_v he_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v hurt_v now_o comfortable_a be_v it_o that_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o angel_n and_o speak_v of_o saint_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o servant_n of_o our_o god_n inuolue_v his_o holy_a angel_n and_o his_o redeem_a saint_n all_o in_o one_o fellowship_n and_o society_n with_o himself_o according_a to_o that_o i_o go_v to_o my_o god_n and_o 17._o your_o god_n my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n we_o be_v make_v fellow_n in_o a_o most_o high_a and_o honourable_a incorporation_n with_o christ_n and_o his_o angel_n the_o lord_n give_v we_o grace_n to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o our_o call_n verse_n 4._o and_o i_o hear_v the_o number_n of_o they_o which_o be_v seal_v a_o hundred_o and_o four_o and_o forty_o thousand_o of_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n what_o the_o lord_n propound_v he_o dispose_v do_v also_o and_o what_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o perform_v now_o for_o the_o further_a comfort_n of_o the_o church_n the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v bring_v in_o take_v a_o view_n of_o his_o people_n and_o seal_v such_o as_o be_v his_o own_o as_o he_o promise_v he_o will_v do_v for_o the_o seal_n thus_o only_o we_o have_v to_o say_v more_o he_o seal_v his_o saint_n in_o three_o place_n in_o their_o heart_n 2._o cor._n 1._o 22._o in_o their_o head_n or_o forehead_n as_o here_o and_o in_o their_o arm_n set_v i_o as_o a_o seal_n on_o thy_o heart_n and_o as_o a_o signet_n on_o thy_o 6._o arm_n i_o know_v some_o divine_n take_v this_o to_o be_v the_o arm_n voice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o christ_n it_o may_v as_o well_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o church_n for_o what_o in_o love_n he_o promise_v to_o his_o spouse_n in_o love_n also_o he_o require_v of_o she_o christus_fw-la est_fw-la signaculum_fw-la in_o cord_n in_o 8._o front_n in_o brachio_n christ_n to_o his_o saint_n be_v a_o seal_n in_o their_o heart_n in_o their_o forehead_n and_o in_o their_o arm_n in_o cord_n ut_fw-la semper_fw-la diligamus_fw-la in_o front_n ut_fw-la semper_fw-la confiteamur_fw-la ibid._n in_o brachio_n ut_fw-la semper_fw-la operemur_fw-la in_o our_o heart_n he_o seal_v we_o and_o cause_v we_o t●…_n love_v he_o in_o our_o forehead_n he_o seal_v we_o and_o cause_v we_o to_o confess_v he_o in_o our_o arm_n he_o seal_v we_o and_o cause_v we_o to_o work_v in_o our_o call_n and_o bring_v out_o the_o fruit_n of_o righteousness_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n but_o alas_o few_o be_v they_o who_o heart_n do_v love_v age_n he_o few_o who_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n will_v confess_v he_o because_o few_o in_o time_n of_o peace_n have_v a_o arm_n to_o do_v any_o good_a for_o his_o glory_n the_o mouth_n of_o most_o professor_n be_v open_a to_o confess_v he_o their_o hand_n be_v close_v impotent_a like_v he_o in_o the_o gospel_n who_o have_v the_o wither_a hand_n they_o can_v do_v no_o good_a for_o 10._o he_o a_o argument_n that_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o right_o seal_v that_o saint_n john_n say_v he_o hear_v the_o number_n of_o himself_o they_o who_o be_v seal_v be_v great_o for_o our_o comfort_n the_o lord_n have_v the_o definite_a number_n of_o his_o saint_n he_o know_v who_o be_v his_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a as_o our_o proverb_n be_v none_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v lose_v in_o the_o tell_n it_o be_v write_v of_o cyrus_n that_o he_o know_v the_o name_n of_o all_o they_o who_o be_v in_o his_o army_n much_o more_o do_v the_o lord_n know_v he_o all_o the_o hair_n of_o your_o head_n 30._o be_v number_v say_v our_o saviour_n sith_o he_o have_v number_v our_o hair_n and_o by_o his_o providence_n keep_v we_o that_o one_o of_o they_o fall_v not_o to_o the_o ground_n much_o more_o may_v we_o think_v that_o he_o will_v keep_v ourselves_o for_o he_o have_v we_o in_o his_o register_n and_o engrave_v on_o the_o palm_n of_o his_o hand_n so_o that_o he_o can_v forget_v us._n the_o person_n number_v be_v distinguish_v into_o gentile_n two_o rank_n jew_n and_o gentile_n for_o under_o these_o two_o all_o mankind_n redeem_v be_v comprehend_v the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o 16._o covenant_n one_o that_o believe_v to_o the_o jew_n first_o and_o also_o to_o the_o grecian_a the_o jew_n be_v put_v first_o because_o they_o be_v our_o elder_a brethren_n and_o be_v first_o in_o the_o covenant_n before_o us._n sixteen_o hundred_o year_n dwell_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o tent_n of_o sem_fw-mi and_o be_v first_o style_v the_o god_n of_o sem_fw-mi now_o they_o lie_v out_o for_o a_o time_n or_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o apostle_n obstinacy_n in_o a_o part_n be_v come_v unto_o israel_n 25._o until_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v come_v in_o and_o now_o other_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n have_v the_o lord_n be_v the_o god_n of_o japheth_n &_o have_v persuade_v japheth_n to_o dwell_v 27._o in_o the_o tent_n of_o sem_fw-mi according_a as_o noah_n propehsy_v and_o here_o the_o apostle_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seal_n bring_v in_o their_o conversion_n and_o call_v again_o which_o seem_v more_o full_o to_o be_v handle_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o eleven_o to_o the_o roman_n 11._o this_o remain_v yet_o to_o be_v do_v before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n let_v we_o love_v they_o pity_v they_o and_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o the_o veil_n may_v be_v take_v from_o their_o mind_n and_o they_o may_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n their_o number_n be_v first_o general_o set_v down_o of_o all_o down_o the_o tribe_n be_v seal_v a_o hundred_o forty_o &_o four_o thousand_o and_o then_o particular_o of_o every_o tribe_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o which_o make_v up_o the_o general_a number_n aforesaid_a of_o a_o hundred_o forty_o &_o four_o thousand_o not_o that_o we_o be_v to_o think_v there_o be_v no_o mo_z nor_o few_o of_o every_o tribe_n but_o a_o definite_a number_n be_v put_v for_o a_o indefinite_a we_o see_v then_o that_o of_o all_o rank_n and_o state_n of_o man_n own_o god_n have_v his_o own_o suppose_v unknown_a unto_o man_n eliiah_n be_v a_o great_a prophet_n yet_o be_v he_o deceive_v in_o this_o that_o he_o think_v there_o be_v no_o worshipper_n of_o god_n in_o his_o day_n but_o himself_o the_o lord_n tell_v he_o he_o have_v seven_o thousand_o in_o israel_n that_o be_v many_o thousand_o who_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o baal_n and_o yet_o howsoever_o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n more_o of_o god_n elect_n yet_o be_v they_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o reprobate_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v collect_v out_o of_o this_o definite_a number_n for_o what_o be_v a_o hundred_o forty_o and_o four_o thousand_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o the_o thousand_o of_o israel_n in_o the_o day_n of_o moses_n there_o be_v six_o hundred_o thousand_o fight_a man_n who_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n in_o the_o day_n of_o david_n they_o be_v increase_v 6._o to_o
the_o last_o breath_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherewith_o he_o inspire_v the_o writer_n of_o holy_a scripture_n no_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v after_o this_o it_o be_v the_o last_o love-token_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o love_a husband_n after_o which_o he_o will_v write_v no_o more_o unto_o we_o but_o will_v come_v himself_o he_o have_v send_v it_o to_o we_o with_o the_o disciple_n who_o he_o love_v best_a and_o who_o be_v the_o last_o and_o long_a liver_n of_o all_o the_o disciple_n kind_a child_n remember_v best_o the_o word_n remember_v speak_v by_o their_o father_n on_o their_o deathbed_n and_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o after_o death_n they_o can_v receive_v any_o information_n from_o they_o o_o in_o what_o estimation_n will_v they_o have_v it_o all_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v lay_v up_o in_o our_o heart_n but_o special_o these_o which_o he_o utter_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o most_o of_o all_o these_fw-mi by_o which_o now_o after_o his_o resurrection_n &_o ascension_n he_o speak_v unto_o us._n there_o be_v many_o now_o a_o day_n companion_n to_o the_o rich_a glutton_n and_o his_o brethren_n they_o will_v not_o believe_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o 31._o if_o one_o come_v from_o the_o dead_a then_o will_v they_o amend_v their_o life_n this_o be_v a_o proverb_n frequent_a in_o their_o they_o mouth_n but_o now_o this_o excuse_n also_o be_v take_v from_o they_o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n witness_n unto_o we_o what_o fearful_a wrath_n be_v reserve_v for_o the_o wicked_a what_o unspeakable_a joy_n prepare_v for_o the_o godly_a if_o for_o all_o this_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v nor_o amend_v their_o life_n be_v they_o not_o worthy_a of_o the_o great_a condemnation_n revelation_n in_o the_o eighteen_o year_n of_o the_o emperor_n tiberius_n our_o lord_n suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n he_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a ascend_v on_o high_a and_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a about_o the_o fourteen_o year_n of_o 8._o domitian_n give_v he_o this_o revelation_n to_o s._n john_n in_o the_o i_o will_v pathmos_n so_o witness_v irenaeus_n non_fw-fr multun●…_n 〈◊〉_d ante_fw-la temporis_fw-la apocalypsin_fw-la vidit_fw-la joannes_n sed_fw-la pain_fw-la sub_fw-la nostro_fw-la saeculo_fw-la ad_fw-la finem_fw-la domitiani_n imperii_fw-la it_o be_v not_o long_o say_v he_o since_o s._n john_n see_v this_o revelation_n but_o almost_o in_o our_o own_o day_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o domitian_n empire_n fifty_o day_n after_o his_o ascension_n he_o send_v down_o that_o promise_a spirit_n the_o comforter_n chronol_fw-it so_o fifty_o year_n and_o ten_o after_o that_o he_o send_v down_o this_o comfortable_a book_n of_o prophecy_n contain_v a_o general_a project_n and_o view_v of_o all_o the_o estate_n of_o his_o church_n until_o the_o world_n end_n doubtless_o this_o have_v proceed_v of_o his_o love_a himself_o kindness_n towards_o his_o poor_a church_n he_o foresee_v the_o great_a and_o manifold_a trouble_n that_o be_v to_o befall_v she_o he_o know_v it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o long_a time_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o between_o his_o ascension_n and_o second_o come_v that_o therefore_o his_o church_n shall_v not_o faint_v our_o lord_n and_o love_n have_v send_v we_o this_o present_a and_o love-letter_n that_o we_o may_v run_v unto_o it_o as_o aaron_n and_o the_o church_n of_o old_a do_v to_o the_o oracle_n to_o know_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o these_o battle_n of_o saint_n militant_a here_o on_o earth_n &_o special_o of_o these_o perturbation_n raise_v this_o day_n against_o the_o church_n by_o mahomet_n in_o the_o east_n and_o antichrist_n in_o the_o west_n we_o be_v not_o then_o to_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v spoil_v book_n and_o defraud_v of_o the_o comfort_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n by_o these_o instrument_n of_o the_o serpent_n who_o either_o disclaim_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o book_n or_o then_o will_v scare_v we_o from_o it_o by_o a_o pretence_n of_o the_o obscurity_n thereof_o for_o these_o be_v the_o two_o scandal_n which_o offend_v many_o and_o make_v they_o if_o not_o utter_o to_o reject_v at_o least_o too_o light_o &_o misregard_n this_o heavenly_a present_n as_o for_o the_o first_o albeit_o there_o need_v no_o testimony_n it_o of_o man_n where_o divine_a authority_n give_v out_o the_o decree_n bless_a be_v he_o who_o read_v and_o they_o who_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o this_o prophecy_n yet_o man_n may_v very_o well_o 3._o be_v bring_v in_o against_o man_n and_o what_o have_v be_v say_v by_o any_o against_o it_o be_v easy_o disprove_v by_o that_o which_o other_o more_o ancient_a and_o more_o worthy_a credit_n have_v speak_v for_o it_o justinus_n martyr_n revelationem_fw-la judcos_fw-la hanc_fw-la joanni_fw-la qui_fw-la unus_fw-la erat_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la christi_fw-la factam_fw-la esse_fw-la testatur_fw-la justine_n martyr_n who_o write_v about_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n after_o christ_n witness_n that_o this_o revelation_n be_v make_v to_o s._n john_n who_o be_v one_o of_o christ_n his_o disciple_n irenaeus_n ten_o year_n after_o he_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v before_o valen._n affirm_v the_o same_o with_o they_o s._n ambrose_n 17._o and_o s._n augustine_n do_v concur_v nec_fw-la illud_fw-la mediocre_fw-la quod_fw-la de_fw-la throno_fw-la dei_fw-la exire_fw-la slwium_fw-la legimus_fw-la sic_fw-la enim_fw-la habes_fw-la dicente_fw-la joanne_n euangelista_fw-la that_o which_o be_v write_v reu._n 22._o of_o a_o river_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n flow_v from_o the_o throne_n ambrose_n take_v it_o up_o plain_o as_o write_v to_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n augustine_n as_o i_o have_v say_v have_v the_o like_a but_o this_o point_n i_o leave_v as_o be_v sufficient_o handle_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o our_o apoc._n time_n namely_o and_o at_o great_a length_n by_o cotterius_n the_o other_o scandal_n of_o obscurity_n be_v easy_o remove_v it_o if_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o prophecy_n run_v not_o before_o the_o execution_n thereof_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o age_n to_o understand_v this_o book_n so_o clear_o as_o now_o by_o god_n grace_n his_o servant_n may_v no_o marvel_n though_o s._n jerome_n in_o paulin._n his_o time_n say_v of_o it_o that_o the_o apocalypse_n have_v tot_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la quot_fw-la verba_fw-la as_o many_o mystery_n as_o word_n for_o prophecy_n before_o they_o be_v accomplish_v be_v aenigmata_fw-la that_o be_v riddle_n or_o dark_a and_o obscure_a sentence_n but_o when_o they_o be_v fulfil_v tunc_fw-la liquidam_fw-la 43._o habent_fw-la &_o certam_fw-la expositionem_fw-la then_o have_v they_o a_o clear_a and_o sure_a exposition_n yet_o s._n augustine_n mitigate_v that_o difficulty_n allege_v by_o s._n jerome_n and_o leave_v we_o some_o better_a hope_n he_o grant_v this_o in_o apocalypsi_fw-la multa_fw-la obscurè_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la ut_fw-la mentem_fw-la legentis_fw-la exerceant_fw-la that_o in_o the_o revelation_n many_o thing_n be_v difficult_a whereby_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o read_v it_o may_v be_v exercise_v yet_o to_o encourage_v we_o he_o subjoin_v pauca_fw-la tamen_fw-la in_o co_fw-la sunt_fw-la ex_fw-la quorum_fw-la 17._o manifestatione_n indagentur_fw-la cetera_fw-la cum_fw-la labour_v that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n in_o it_o so_o plain_o manifest_v as_o that_o they_o may_v lead_v we_o to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o rest_n if_o we_o take_v pain_n to_o learn_v they_o victorinus_n primasius_n and_o other_o who_o write_v book_n above_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o upon_o this_o book_n be_v indeed_o to_o be_v praise_v for_o their_o pain_n glory_n be_v to_o god_n out_o of_o all_o their_o labour_n some_o light_n arise_v to_o this_o prophecy_n but_o let_v the_o reader_n remember_v that_o they_o be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v follow_v in_o their_o sense_n certius_fw-la est_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la periculo_fw-la sustinere_fw-la adimpletionem_fw-la valent._n prophetiae_fw-la quam_fw-la divinare_fw-la it_o be_v more_o sure_a to_o await_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n then_o to_o divine_a of_o it_o beforehand_o what_o make_v john_n the_o baptist_n a_o great_a prophet_n than_o isaiah_n or_o any_o other_o accomplish_v that_o go_v before_o he_o nothing_o but_o the_o difference_n of_o time_n for_o he_o see_v that_o present_a and_o perfect_v which_o prophet_n before_o tell_v be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o will_v be_v accomplish_v and_o the_o same_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o mean_a now_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o 11._o god_n be_v great_a than_o the_o baptist_n and_o why_o man_n now_o in_o the_o holy_a call_v be_v able_a to_o show_v more_o clear_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o prophecy_n than_o other_o more_o famous_a and_o worthy_a light_n can_v have_v do_v before_o but_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n in_o the_o entry_n of_o this_o conceal_v book_n as_o i_o say_v a_o blessing_n be_v pronounce_v upon_o they_o that_o
lord_n two_o hundred_o and_o seventie_o year_n i_o find_v he_o at_o the_o lord_n end_n of_o theophilactus_fw-la his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n and_o some_o prophet_n print_v at_o paris_n in_o the_o year_n 1548._o he_o short_o paraphrase_n the_o prophecy_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o chapter_n primasius_n a_o african_a bishop_n be_v next_o unto_o he_o 440._o some_o think_v as_o trithemius_n testify_v that_o he_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o s._n augustine_n he_o live_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 440._o and_o be_v bishop_n of_o utica_n he_o divide_v this_o prophecy_n into_o two_o book_n one_o contain_v in_o the_o first_o twelve_o chapter_n the_o other_o in_o the_o rest_n to_o the_o end_n more_o particular_o again_o he_o part_v the_o whole_a in_o fine_a book_n his_o book_n be_v print_v coloniae_fw-la anno_fw-la 1535._o hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la live_v about_o the_o year_n 1240._o 1240._o he_o divide_v the_o book_n into_o seven_o vision_n as_o many_o other_o also_o do_v the_o first_o vision_n be_v in_o the_o first_o three_o chapter_n the_o second_o from_o the_o four_o to_o the_o eight_o the_o three_o from_o the_o eight_o to_o the_o twelve_o the_o four_o from_o it_o to_o the_o fifteen_o the_o five_o from_o it_o to_o the_o eighteen_o the_o six_o in_o the_o eighteen_o nineteen_o and_o uncertain_a twenty_o the_o seven_o in_o the_o two_o last_o chapter_n a_o old_a manuscript_n folio_n express_v no_o certain_a author_n in_o most_o thing_n it_o be_v consonant_a to_o hugo_n 1555._o dionysius_n carthusianus_n print_v at_o paris_n in_o the_o year_n 1555_o handle_v this_o book_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o warn_v the_o reader_n in_o his_o prologue_n that_o it_o be_v prophetalis_fw-la libre_fw-la a_o prophetical_a book_n yet_o not_o without_o good_a doctrine_n for_o albeit_o say_v he_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n some_o book_n be_v legal_a namely_o the_o four_o evangelist_n other_o again_o be_v historical_a as_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o sapientiall_a such_o as_o the_o epistle_n and_o this_o only_a prophetical_a certum_fw-la tamen_fw-la est_fw-la in_o quolibet_fw-la genere_fw-la librorum_fw-la istorum_fw-la aliqua_fw-la de_fw-la aliorum_fw-la librorum_fw-la materia_fw-la contineri_fw-la yet_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o in_o anyone_o of_o these_o sort_n of_o book_n the_o matter_n of_o other_o book_n be_v also_o someway_n contain_v express_v lyra_n have_v a_o short_a paraphrase_n on_o the_o revelation_n d._n doctor_n chytraeus_n his_o book_n print_v at_o viteberg_n 1571._o in_o the_o year_n 1571._o divide_v this_o prophecy_n into_o seven_o vision_n the_o first_o present_v a_o clear_a description_n of_o christ_n supreme_a king_n and_o high_a priest_n of_o his_o church_n and_o open_v up_o the_o state_n and_o form_n of_o church-government_n in_o this_o life_n this_o vision_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o first_o three_o chapter_n the_o second_o be_v from_o the_o four_o chapter_n to_o the_o eight_o the_o three_o from_o the_o eight_o to_o the_o twelve_o wherein_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n and_o heresy_n which_o be_v to_o fall_v out_o be_v by_o sound_n of_o trumpet_n foretold_v unto_o the_o church_n the_o four_o from_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o fifteen_o foreshow_v the_o battle_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o dragon_n and_o with_o the_o new_a and_o old_a roman_a empire_n wherein_o we_o have_v also_o a_o discovery_n of_o antichrist_n the_o five_o be_v in_o the_o fifteen_o and_o sixteen_o chapter_n contain_v the_o vial_n of_o wrath_n pour_v out_o upon_o the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o six_o vision_n be_v from_o the_o seventeen_o chapter_n to_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o and_o it_o entreat_v of_o the_o punishment_n of_o antichrist_n the_o seven_o and_o last_o be_v a_o vision_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o the_o two_o last_o chapter_n 1573._o bullingerus_n his_o book_n print_v at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1573._o a_o judicious_a and_o solid_a writer_n agree_v with_o they_o who_o divide_v this_o prophecy_n into_o seven_o vision_n alphonsus_n conradus_n mantuanus_fw-la his_o book_n print_v 1560._o basileae_n in_o the_o year_n 1560._o he_o dedicate_v it_o to_o the_o mighty_a monarch_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o follow_v they_o who_o divide_v this_o prophecy_n in_o seven_o vision_n d._n guilielmus_fw-la fulco_n anglus_fw-la a_o learned_a and_o modest_a 1573._o writer_n his_o book_n print_v at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1573._o divide_v this_o prophecy_n in_o three_o vision_n the_o first_o be_v in_o the_o first_o three_o chapter_n the_o second_o from_o the_o four_o to_o the_o twelve_o the_o three_o from_o it_o to_o the_o end_n aretius_n bernensis_fw-la in_o the_o year_n 1584._o go_v also_o 1584._o with_o they_o who_o part_v this_o book_n into_o seven_o vision_n collado_n print_v morgiis_fw-la in_o the_o year_n 1584._o will_v 1584._o have_v the_o apocalypse_n to_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o threefold_a sort_n of_o sign_n tend_v all_o to_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o purpose_n to_o wit_n seal_n trumpet_n and_o vial_n these_o three_o signify_v all_o one_o thing_n so_o that_o in_o his_o judgement_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o first_o seal_n first_o trumpet_n &_o first_o vial_n be_v all_o one_o &_o so_o he_o think_v also_o of_o the_o rest_n james_n brocard_n his_o judgement_n be_v that_o in_o the_o uncertain_a revelation_n those_o thing_n be_v handle_v and_o in_o distinct_a order_n set_v forth_o which_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n have_v write_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o latter_a time_n in_o a_o word_n he_o call_v it_o a_o conclusion_n and_o sum_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o and_o about_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v prophecy_n and_o lead_v they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v have_v this_o in_o such_o so●…_n a_o prophecy_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v that_o those_o which_o be_v past_a be_v also_o understand_v with_o other_o thing_n not_o much_o pertinent_a to_o this_o prophecy_n leo_fw-la jude_n a_o tigurine_a preacher_n translate_v out_o of_o down_o dutch_a into_o english_a by_o edmond_n allen_n about_o this_o same_o time_n write_v a_o pretty_a and_o godly_a paraphrase_n upon_o this_o book_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o chapter_n junius_n print_v at_o heidelberg_n in_o the_o year_n 1591._o 1591._o the_o prophetical_a part_n of_o this_o book_n say_v he_o begin_v at_o the_o four_o chapter_n and_o be_v distinguish_v into_o two_o history_n whereof_o the_o one_o he_o make_v to_o be_v common_a and_o general_a pertain_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n from_o the_o four_o to_o the_o ten_o chapter_n the_o other_o a_o special_a prophecy_n contain_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a from_o the_o ten_o chapter_n to_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o carolus_n gallus_n print_v at_o leiden_fw-mi in_o the_o year_n 1592._o 1592._o will_v have_v the_o whole_a time_n from_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n to_o the_o last_o day_n divide_v into_o seven_o age_n which_o by_o four_o sundry_a pleasant_a picture_n as_o he_o call_v they_o or_o representation_n be_v propose_v unto_o we_o first_o in_o the_o seven_o epistle_n next_o in_o the_o seven_o seal_n three_o in_o seven_o trumpet_n last_o in_o seven_o vial_n by_o these_o four_o picture_n the_o lively_a image_n of_o divine_a providence_n govern_v his_o church_n through_o all_o the_o seven_o age_n be_v figure_v unto_o us._n the_o seven_o age_n he_o divide_v this_o way_n the_o first_o be_v from_o s._n john_n his_o day_n to_o constantine_n the_o second_o from_o constantine_n to_o phocas_n the_o three_o from_o phocas_n to_o carolus_n magnus_n the_o four_o from_o carolus_n to_o conradus_n the_o first_o the_o five_o from_o that_o to_o rodolphus_n the_o six_o from_o rodolphus_n to_o carolus_n quintus_n the_o seven_o from_o he_o to_o the_o second_o come_v of_o the_o great_a king_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n fox_n a_o englishman_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1596._o 1596._o content_n he_o with_o this_o general_a that_o nothing_o in_o time_n past_a have_v or_o in_o time_n to_o come_v shall_v fall_v out_o in_o the_o church_n whereof_o we_o have_v not_o a_o lively_a delineation_n in_o this_o book_n plain_o represent_v to_o the_o eye_n and_o ear_n of_o they_o who_o look_v upon_o it_o that_o it_o may_v most_o just_o be_v doubt_v whether_o this_o book_n be_v a_o prophecy_n or_o a_o ecclesiastical_a history_n wherein_o thing_n to_o fall_v out_o be_v set_v down_o as_o if_o they_o be_v already_o fall_v out_o neither_o have_v they_o otherwise_o fall_v out_o than_o this_o prophecy_n have_v pronounce_v beforehand_o for_o according_a unto_o it_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v george_n gifford_n englishman_n print_v at_o london_n in_o 1596._o the_o year_n 1596._o he_o make_v this_o book_n to_o be_v a_o prophecy_n which_o open_v the_o state_n of_o thing_n to_o
be_v print_v at_o amsterdam_n in_o the_o year_n 1615._o richard_n barnard_n englishman_n his_o treatise_n print_v 1617._o at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1617._o contain_v some_o general_n which_o he_o intitulate_v a_o key_n of_o knowledge_n for_o the_o open_n of_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o s._n johns_n mystical_a revelation_n the_o first_o of_o his_o content_n be_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v to_o be_v diligent_o study_v of_o all_o sort_n in_o these_o last_o time_n the_o second_o that_o it_o be_v a_o apocalypsis_n and_o not_o a_o apocrypsis_n but_o a_o mystery_n make_v manifest_a the_o three_o be_v what_o have_v make_v this_o book_n till_o these_o latter_a time_n so_o obscure_a wherein_o the_o obscurity_n lie_v and_o to_o who_o chief_o it_o become_v so_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v the_o four_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v to_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n thereof_o to_o remove_v the_o obscurity_n and_o so_o right_o to_o expound_v the_o same_o last_o he_o set_v down_o a_o interpretation_n of_o all_o the_o most_o difficult_a thing_n in_o the_o chapter_n throughout_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n john_n bal●…_n englishman_n in_o his_o preface_n have_v a_o express_v short_a method_n and_o sum_n of_o the_o first_o ten_o chapter_n from_o the_o eleven_o to_o the_o end_n a_o large_a commentary_n which_o he_o intulate_v the_o image_n of_o both_o church_n where_o and_o when_o his_o book_n be_v print_v be_v not_o express_v d._n broughton_n print_v at_o london_n in_o the_o end_n of_o london_n his_o learned_a treatise_n intitulat_fw-la consent_v of_o scripture_n have_v a_o short_a discourse_n upon_o this_o prophecy_n wherein_o he_o clear_v the_o chief_a doubt_n and_o difficulty_n thereof_o james_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o 1616._o last_o of_o they_o that_o come_v in_o my_o hand_n but_o with_o all_o reason_n may_v be_v reckon_v in_o among_o the_o first_o and_o the_o best_a among_o many_o other_o his_o highness_n work_n no_o less_o rare_a then_o royal_a there_o be_v a_o learned_a paraphrase_n upon_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n beside_o that_o in_o his_o praemonition_n to_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n his_o majesty_n have_v handle_v the_o controversy_n of_o this_o time_n concern_v religion_n like_o a_o profound_a and_o sound_a theolog_n and_o by_o invincible_a reason_n have_v prove_v out_o of_o this_o prophecy_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n thus_o stand_v his_o highness_n in_o the_o forefront_n of_o jeho●…ah_n his_o battle_n fight_v for_o israel_n like_o another_o david_n he_o have_v give_v that_o romish_a goliath_n with_o argument_n like_o flinty_a stone_n sling_v out_o of_o the_o word_n a_o deadly_a wound_n whereof_o he_o shall_v never_o recover_v his_o majesty_n have_v begin_v to_o make_v naked_a the_o whore_n and_o to_o discover_v her_o filthiness_n mask_v before_o with_o the_o veil_n of_o hypocritical_a holiness_n he_o have_v sound_v the_o trumpet_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o emperor_n king_n prince_n and_o free_a estate_n through_o all_o christendom_n the_o lord_n waken_v their_o heart_n to_o execute_v the_o determinate_a judgement_n fore-prophecied_n in_o this_o book_n upon_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o babel_n pare●…s_v his_o learned_a and_o judicious_a commentary_n 1618._o on_o the_o revelation_n come_v in_o my_o sight_n after_o that_o i_o have_v near_o absolve_v this_o first_o prophecy_n two_o necessary_a caution_n or_o caveat_n to_o be_v consider_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o book_n the_o first_o caution_n we_o must_v beware_v of_o two_o extremity_n in_o time_n the_o handle_n of_o this_o prophecy_n first_o that_o we_o limit_v not_o these_o vision_n so_o particular_o unto_o time_n and_o person_n as_o many_o do_v whereby_o they_o have_v great_o impair_v the_o majesty_n and_o amplitude_n of_o this_o revelation_n for_o example_n one_o among_o many_o be_v the_o first_o seal_n which_o show_v our_o lord_n narrow_o ride_v on_o his_o white_a horse_n like_o a_o conqueror_n no_o large_a in_o respect_n of_o time_n then_o from_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n i_o know_v forthaeus_fw-la and_o other_o extend_v it_o large_a and_o will_v have_v it_o reach_v from_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n but_o this_o also_o be_v too_o narrow_a count_a the_o church_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o great_a comfort_n if_o the_o conqueror_n ride_v on_o the_o white_a horse_n be_v pinch_v and_o bound_v within_o so_o short_a a_o time_n but_o the_o certain_a truth_n be_v our_o lord_n jesus_n mount_v by_o the_o open_n of_o the_o first_o seal_n upon_o his_o white_a horse_n shall_v so_o continue_v ride_v through_o the_o world_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n till_o he_o have_v gather_v in_o his_o saint_n till_o he_o overcome_v and_o make_v his_o enemy_n his_o footstool_n this_o will_v be_v manifest_a if_o we_o compare_v the_o end_n end_n of_o this_o prophecy_n with_o the_o begin_n thereof_o in_o the_o entry_n of_o this_o prophecy_n at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o first_o seal_n the_o rider_n on_o the_o white_a horse_n appear_v in_o the_o end_n of_o it_o there_o he_o appear_v again_o i_o see_v 13._o heaven_n open_v and_o behold_v a_o white_a horse_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o he_o be_v call_v faithful_a and_o true_a and_o in_o righteousness_n he_o do_v judge_v and_o make_v war_n etc._n etc._n he_o be_v clothe_v in_o a_o vesture_n dip_v in_o blood_n and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o battle_n he_o be_v not_o know_v under_o this_o type_n shall_v we_o therefore_o think_v he_o be_v not_o sight_v nor_o shoot_v his_o arrow_n no_o his_o vesture_n in_o the_o second_o apparition_n be_v a_o witness_n of_o his_o victory_n and_o battle_n slaughter_n of_o his_o enemy_n this_o may_v have_v tell_v they_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o come_v out_o in_o the_o first_o seal_n ride_v on_o a_o white_a horse_n and_o of_o who_o it_o be_v so_o express_o say_v that_o he_o go_v forth_o conquer_a that_o he_o may_v overcome_v 2._o be_v to_o continue_v so_o till_o he_o have_v do_v the_o work_n for_o which_o he_o come_v forth_o that_o be_v perfect_v his_o saint_n and_o subdue_v his_o enemy_n we_o must_v not_o limit_v so_o short_a a_o time_n to_o so_o great_a a_o work_n they_o who_o do_v so_o defraud_v the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v say_v of_o a_o great_a and_o ample_a comfort_n for_o us._n even_o in_o our_o own_o day_n and_o among_o ourselves_o bless_v be_v his_o name_n for_o it_o this_o conqueror_n be_v ride_v and_o shall_v so_o continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n yet_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o seal_n last_v as_o also_o of_o the_o subsequent_a seal_n follow_v it_o which_o shall_v god_n will_v hereafter_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o seal_n open_v up_o the_o general_a course_n of_o thing_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o within_o narrow_a bound_n shall_v they_o not_o be_v restrain_v what_o shall_v i_o speak_v of_o other_o grosser_n interpretation_n person_n whereunto_o many_o be_v drive_v by_o bind_v this_o prophecy_n to_o particular_a person_n can_v the_o four_o beast_n be_v four_o evangelist_n then_o s._n john_n behoove_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o or_o else_o you_o must_v make_v they_o five_o evangelist_n for_o every_o one_o of_o the_o four_o prepare_v he_o or_o shall_v the_o first_o beast_n be_v quadratus_n shall_v the_o second_o be_v justinus_n etc._n etc._n shall_v the_o angel_n come_v from_o the_o east_n who_o have_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v constantine_n the_o great_a or_o shall_v the_o angel_n that_o offer_v up_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n be_v constantine_n the_o great_a also_o he_o be_v great_a indeed_o but_o this_o be_v to_o make_v he_o too_o great_a shall_v the_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n be_v thomas_n cromwell_n lord_n of_o essex_n or_o the_o angel_n have_v power_n over_o the_o fire_n be_v thomas_n cranmer_n or_o shall_v the_o type_n of_o the_o harvest_n and_o vintage_n be_v appropriate_a to_o england_n why_o have_v brightman_n broach_v such_o opinion_n without_o all_o hope_n or_o help_v of_o verity_n i_o know_v the_o person_n who_o he_o have_v name_v be_v church_n famous_a and_o honourable_a and_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o flourish_a church_n in_o england_n his_o name_n be_v praise_v therefore_o but_o i_o be_o assure_v the_o reverend_a bishop_n the_o learned_a doctor_n and_o divine_n there_o will_v not_o vindicate_v that_o to_o themselves_o which_o be_v common_a to_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v tedious_a to_o repeat_v all_o of_o this_o sort_n whereby_o common_a type_n be_v accommodate_v unto_o private_a person_n which_o be_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o brightman_n only_o though_o most_o part_n of_o they_o be_v forge_v in_o his_o own_o brain_n but_o of_o
eternal_a felicity_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o and_o beginning_n of_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n in_o this_o all_o the_o interpreter_n agree_v and_o make_v no_o question_n except_o that_o some_o will_v have_v the_o four_o and_o five_o chapter_n to_o contain_v vision_n of_o prediction_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n which_o as_o we_o have_v say_v can_v be_v for_o the_o open_n of_o the_o seal_n out_o of_o which_o come_v the_o discovery_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v begin_v at_o the_o six_o chapter_n now_o to_o take_v up_o right_o the_o method_n of_o the_o prophecy_n time_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a let_v we_o keep_v in_o mind_n that_o ground_n lay_v by_o s._n augustine_n and_o primasius_n that_o it_o be_v prophetia_fw-la saepius_fw-la repetita_fw-la not_o one_o continual_a prophecy_n but_o a_o prophecy_n repeat_v and_o that_o not_o double_v only_o as_o be_v the_o dream_n of_o pharaoh_n to_o show_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o 32._o vision_n but_o tripled_a all_o the_o three_o vision_n foretell_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o different_a manner_n yea_o and_o of_o a_o different_a matter_n one_o from_o another_o except_o that_o the_o last_o vision_n or_o three_o prophecy_n which_o be_v of_o antichrist_n be_v double_v the_o one_o not_o much_o different_a from_o the_o other_o in_o matter_n but_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o handle_v the_o whole_a vision_n of_o this_o prophecy_n concern_v itself_o thing_n to_o come_v in_o the_o church_n militant_a be_v three_o every_o one_o of_o they_o diduce_v in_o a_o diverse_a manner_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o second_o come_v the_o light_n that_o lead_v i_o to_o this_o order_n do_v break_v out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o book_n itself_o and_o the_o attentive_a reader_n may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o which_o by_o diligent_a read_n be_v conceive_v by_o i_o that_o every_o one_o of_o these_o three_o prophecy_n be_v conclude_v with_o a_o prophetical_a description_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n under_o such_o type_n as_o it_o be_v represent_v to_o s._n john_n i_o will_v therefore_o warn_v the_o reader_n who_o desire_v to_o understand_v this_o book_n that_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o description_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o stand_v there_o and_o resolve_v with_o himself_o that_o the_o prophecy_n which_o follow_v it_o begin_v again_o as_o we_o say_v ab_fw-la o●…o_fw-la to_o show_v out_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n as_o i_o say_v or_o then_o in_o manner_n different_a from_o the_o former_a the_o first_o prophecy_n be_v general_n and_o end_n in_o the_o 7._o six_o chapter_n with_o a_o prophetical_a prediction_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o the_o six_o seal_n all_o the_o difficulty_n will_v be_v about_o this_o but_o we_o will_v show_v our_o reason_n when_o we_o come_v to_o it_o the_o second_o prophecy_n 11._o beginning_n at_o the_o eight_o chapter_n be_v more_o special_a and_o be_v conclude_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n with_o a_o prophetical_a narration_n again_o of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n which_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v the_o 22._o three_o prophecy_n begin_v at_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n be_v particular_a for_o it_o leave_v all_o other_o enemy_n and_o point_v at_o antichrist_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n ver_fw-la 11._o it_o be_v conclude_v with_o a_o prophetical_a representation_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n so_o clear_o that_o i_o hope_v it_o shall_v have_v no_o contradictor_n the_o first_o prophecy_n which_o be_v general_n tell_v the_o first_o prophecy_n in_o effect_n be_v a_o general_a prognostication_n propose_v a_o short_a and_o summary_n view_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n special_o under_o violent_a persecution_n to_o the_o world_n end_n which_o be_v this_o in_o the_o first_o seal_n be_v declare_v how_o christ_n gospel_n shall_v go_v through_o the_o world_n ride_v upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v the_o gospel_n by_o his_o servant_n where_o and_o when_o it_o please_v he_o in_o it_o the_o second_o seal_n we_o be_v forewarn_v that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v without_o trouble_n for_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n shadow_v by_o the_o rider_n on_o the_o red_a horse_n shall_v in_o bloody_a manner_n persecute_v the_o preacher_n judgement_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o be_v we_o tell_v in_o the_o three_o and_o four_o seal_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a for_o thereupon_o follow_v the_o black_a and_o the_o pale_a horse_n with_o their_o rider_n figure_v famine_n pestilence_n and_o other_o horrible_a plague_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v come_v on_o the_o world_n for_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o because_o the_o sword_n famine_n pestilence_n do_v not_o so_o go_v through_o the_o world_n that_o the_o godly_a be_v exempt_v from_o they_o in_o the_o five_o seal_n the_o estate_n of_o saint_n come_v trouble_v on_o earth_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n be_v set_v down_o in_o most_o comfortable_a manner_n and_o then_o as_o they_o try_v in_o the_o five_o seal_n for_o the_o day_n of_o revenge_n desperate_o and_o judgement_n so_o at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o six_o seal_n the_o horrible_a day_n of_o doom_n appear_v to_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o wicked_a we_o be_v not_o then_o to_o bind_v any_o of_o these_o seal_n time_n except_o the_o six_o to_o a_o determinate_a time_n but_o take_v they_o up_o as_o extend_v to_o all_o time_n during_o the_o world_n endurance_n far_o less_o to_o expound_v these_o rider_n on_o the_o horse_n of_o roman_a emperor_n &_o other_o particular_a person_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o this_o first_o prophecy_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n except_o seal_n about_o the_o six_o seal_n whether_o or_o not_o it_o do_v foreshow_a the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o about_o the_o seven_o chapter_n how_o it_o follow_v and_o depend_v on_o the_o six_o and_o how_o it_o be_v a_o pendicle_n of_o the_o first_o prophecy_n concern_v the_o first_o we_o hold_v thus_o be_v that_o the_o six_o seal_n contain_v a_o prophetical_a prediction_n of_o the_o last_o day_n against_o this_o there_o be_v two_o opinion_n some_o think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o heresy_n apostasy_n and_o defection_n from_o the_o faith_n other_o that_o it_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o some_o fearful_a temporal_a judgement_n but_o neither_o of_o these_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v the_o text_n itself_o militat_v direct_o against_o the_o text._n first_o opinion_n that_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n the_o fall_n of_o the_o star_n admit_v not_o any_o allegorical_a interpretation_n of_o any_o darkness_n to_o come_v by_o heresy_n and_o apostasy_n for_o it_o be_v plain_o say_v in_o the_o fifteen_o verse_n that_o king_n great_a man_n and_o captain_n be_v afraid_a when_o they_o see_v the_o fearful_a change_n of_o the_o creature_n they_o hide_v themselves_o in_o den_n shall_v we_o think_v here_o that_o it_o be_v apostasy_n and_o heresy_n obscure_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o make_v they_o to_o cry_v out_o mountain_n 16._o fall_v upon_o we_o and_o cover_v us._n no_o so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o all_o fear_n for_o that_o matter_n that_o by_o the_o contrary_n they_o rejoice_v in_o it_o emperor_n i_o mean_v great_a man_n and_o captain_n be_v themselves_o chief_a author_n actor_n and_o allower_n of_o these_o heresy_n which_o darken_v the_o sun_n yea_o it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v that_o they_o either_o by_o allurement_n entice_v other_o or_o by_o violence_n force_v they_o to_o make_v apostasy_n and_o defection_n from_o the_o truth_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v a_o denunciation_n temporal_a of_o any_o temporal_a or_o external_a judgement_n for_o these_o reason_n first_o there_o be_v here_o a_o universal_a change_n make_v of_o all_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n next_o all_o the_o person_n of_o the_o wicked_a not_o of_o one_o nation_n or_o kingdom_n but_o of_o all_o be_v universal_o here_o judge_v and_o that_o under_o seven_o rank_n three_o it_o be_v express_o call_v in_o the_o text_n the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n his_o wrath_n the_o like_a stile_n i_o know_v be_v also_o give_v to_o day_n of_o temporal_a judgement_n yet_o conjoin_v this_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o reason_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o other_o place_n where_o we_o find_v the_o like_a phrase_n the_o matter_n shall_v be_v clear_a sith_o the_o seven_o vial_n be_v the_o seven_o last_o plague_n wrath._n of_o force_n we_o must_v grant_v that_o the_o last_o vial_n pour_v out_o the_o last_o wrath_n of_o that_o great_a day_n which_o conclude_v all_o wrath_n in_o this_o life_n and_o begin_v that_o endless_a wrath_n in_o the_o life_n to_o
praise_v the_o lord_n beginning_z that_o upon_o earth_n which_o shall_v be_v our_o continual_a exercise_n in_o the_o heaven_n the_o tenor_n of_o their_o song_n follow_v wherein_o three_o lord_n thing_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n 1._o holiness_n 2._o omnipotency_n 3._o eternity_n the_o first_o of_o these_o have_v one_o word_n thrice_o repeat_v and_o that_o as_o isaiah_n say_v with_o a_o antiphonie_n or_o answer_v of_o one_o angel_n to_o another_o 1._o vnum_fw-la jehovam_fw-la celebrant_a repetendo_fw-la unum_fw-la &_o idem_fw-la sanctus_n trinum_fw-la agnosc●…nt_fw-la ter_z repetendo_fw-la quod_fw-la uni_fw-la tribuerunt_fw-la they_o acknowledge_v one_o god_n who_o they_o esteem_v only_o holy_a and_o repeat_v one_o thing_n thrice_o a_o trinity_n they_o acknowledge_v in_o that_o bless_a unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n but_o this_o mystery_n be_v better_a warrant_v by_o other_o and_o more_o pla●…e_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o to_o return_v the_o lord_n be_v so_o holy_a that_o he_o be_v holiness_n itself_o as_o the_o lord_n sun_n be_v among_o the_o light_n of_o the_o firmament_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a lord_n among_o his_o saint_n or_o holy_a one_o what_o light_n they_o have_v be_v no_o light_n if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o sun_n they_o hide_v themselves_o when_o the_o sun_n shine_v and_o all_o the_o holiness_n of_o most_o holy_a creature_n be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o thrice_o holy_a lord_n at_o his_o brightness_n angel_n cover_v their_o face_n they_o be_v holy_a by_o creation_n redeem_v one_o be_v holy_a by_o communication_n other_o thing_n be_v also_o holy_a by_o separation_n as_o be_v jerusalem_n temple_n of_o old_a and_o now_o be_v the_o element_n in_o both_o the_o sacrament_n holy_a but_o none_o neither_o angel_n man_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n holy_a like_o the_o lord_n the_o next_o thing_n they_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o be_v omnipotency_n nothing_o which_o consist_v in_o these_o two_o first_o that_o he_o can_v do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n next_o that_o against_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o truth_n he_o can_v do_v for_o that_o be_v impotency_n and_o not_o omnipotency_n he_o can_v not_o lie_v nor_o deny_v himself_o nor_o come_v against_o his_o own_o word_n the_o first_o of_o these_o render_v instruction_n for_o atheist_n the_o other_o for_o papist_n it_o be_v a_o common_a question_n of_o profane_a man_n whereby_o they_o impugn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_n how_o can_v this_o up_o be_v the_o samaritan_n prince_n when_o he_o hear_v elizeus_fw-la prophecy_n of_o plenty_n of_o victual_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o samaria_n on_o the_o morrow_n though_o the_o day_n before_o it_o be_v sore_o pinch_v with_o famine_n most_o disdainful_o answer_v he_o though_o the_o lord_n will_v 2._o make_v window_n in_o heaven_n can_v this_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v there_o the_o lord_n say_v this_o i_o will_v do_v and_o man_n by_o the_o contrary_a this_o the_o lord_n can_v do_v but_o the_o lord_n be_v and_o will_v be_v find_v true_a and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n yea_o the_o very_a dear_a child_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o 18._o remanent_n of_o their_o infidelity_n oftentimes_o fall_v into_o the_o like_a transgression_n when_o the_o angel_n promise_v sara_n a_o child_n she_o receive_v it_o with_o the_o like_a answer_n how_o can_v this_o be_v since_o i_o be_o wax_v old_a yea_o when_o the_o lord_n promise_v to_o give_v israel_n flesh_n enough_o for_o a_o month_n moses_n disinherit_v it_o shall_v all_o the_o sheep_n and_o 22._o beef_n be_v slay_v for_o they_o to_o find_v they_o or_o shall_v all_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v gather_v to_o suffice_v they_o but_o they_o in_o effect_n receive_v one_o answer_n be_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n 3._o shorten_v or_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n impossible_a to_o the_o lord_n consider_v who_o he_o be_v that_o say_v he_o will_v do_v and_o all_o such_o doubt_n shall_v cease_v which_o make_v man_n inquire_v how_o can_v this_o be_v do_v the_o other_o render_v instruction_n for_o papist_n they_o truth_n urge_v god_n omnipotency_n to_o prove_v their_o new-found_a and_o fond_a transubstantiation_n but_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o in_o this_o they_o make_v his_o power_n to_o fight_v against_o his_o will_n and_o to_o reverse_v his_o own_o word_n &_o the_o plain_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n they_o enforce_v upon_o we_o that_o we_o deny_v god_n omnipotency_n but_o without_o cause_n this_o fault_n be_v their_o own_o and_o not_o we_o they_o limit_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n and_o indeed_o deny_v 41._o his_o power_n when_o they_o say_v he_o can_v give_v we_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n except_o he_o create_v it_o of_o bread_n we_o very_o believe_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n there_o be_v a_o real_a donation_n make_v of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o all_o reverend_a and_o right_a receiver_n that_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o wine_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ._n god_n be_v always_o as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n and_o give_v we_o no_o less_o than_o he_o say_v he_o give_v us._n but_o for_o all_o this_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v bind_v the_o lord_n to_o transubstantiate_v the_o bread_n as_o if_o without_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v unto_o we_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n now_o the_o three_o and_o last_o thing_n for_o which_o they_o eternity_n praise_v the_o lord_n be_v his_o eternity_n and_o everlasting_a be_v who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v to_o come_v this_o be_v a_o circumlocution_n of_o his_o name_n i_o be_o expound_v more_o plain_o in_o the_o next_o word_n he_o live_v for_o evermore_o solus_fw-la verè_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la nec_fw-la à_fw-la fuit_fw-la 31._o praeciditur_fw-la nec_fw-la ab_fw-la crit_n expungitur_fw-la crit_n non_fw-la tollit_fw-la illi_fw-la esse_fw-la ab_fw-la aeterno_fw-la nec_fw-la fuit_fw-la tollit_fw-la illi_fw-la esse_fw-la 11._o in_o aeternum_fw-la be_v be_v so_o proper_a unto_o god_n that_o when_o i_o say_v he_o be_v it_o take_v not_o away_o that_o he_o be_v &_o will_v be_v and_o when_o i_o say_v that_o he_o will_v be_v it_o take_v not_o away_o that_o he_o be_v and_o be_v and_o this_o serve_v great_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n one_o generation_n pass_v and_o another_o come_v say_v solomon_n the_o heaven_n shall_v perish_v but_o the_o lord_n do_v remain_v he_o that_o be_v with_o noah_n in_o the_o ark_n with_o israel_n in_o the_o red-sea_n with_o daniel_n in_o the_o den_n with_o the_o child_n in_o the_o fire_n with_o joseph_n in_o the_o prison_n with_o elisha_n in_o dothan_n enclose_v by_o aramite_n with_o ezechia_n in_o jerusalem_n besiege_v by_o chaldee_n he_o be_v still_o in_o his_o church_n this_o day_n and_o will_v be_v for_o ever_o verse_n 9_o and_o when_o these_o live_a creature_n give_v glory_n and_o honour_n and_o thanks_o to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o thron●…_n which_o live_v for_o evermore_o the_o song_n of_o angel_n be_v second_v by_o the_o song_n saint_n of_o redeem_a saint_n one_o of_o they_o provoke_v another_o to_o praise_v god._n it_o shall_v be_v with_o we_o on_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v with_o they_o in_o heaven_n every_o christian_n shall_v provoke_v another_o to_o piety_n so_o saint_n paul_n plety_n praise_v the_o corinthian_n that_o their_o zeal_n have_v provoke_v many_o but_o now_o most_o part_n of_o man_n live_v as_o if_o they_o be_v set_v in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v censurer_n of_o all_o man_n example_n to_o none_o they_o will_v neither_o provoke_v other_o to_o good_a nor_o be_v provoke_v by_o they_o yea_o even_o in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n there_o they_o be_v silent_a if_o not_o worse_o exercise_v when_o other_o beside_o they_o be_v praise_v the_o lord_n three_o thing_n these_o live_a creature_n be_v say_v to_o lord_n give_v unto_o the_o lord_n glory_n honour_n thanks_o where_o first_o it_o come_v to_o be_v consider_v how_o be_v it_o that_o any_o creature_n either_o angel_n or_o man_n can_v give_v unto_o the_o lord_n who_o have_v give_v to_o he_o first_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v recompense_v 35._o but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o god_n give_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o the_o creature_n give_v to_o god_n when_o god_n give_v he_o give_v to_o the_o creature_n that_o which_o it_o have_v not_o angel_n man_n and_o all_o creature_n have_v their_o be_v of_o he_o but_o the_o creature_n give_v to_o god_n be_v a_o acknowledge_v of_o that_o in_o he_o which_o he_o have_v already_o and_o this_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n or_o then_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o distribution_n either_o to_o the_o 14._o poor_a or_o any_o good_a work_n wherein_o the_o lord_n may_v have_v glory_n as_o we_o be_v command_v to_o do_v good_a and_o to_o distribute_v forget_v not_o for_o
he_o have_v to_o show_v unto_o israel_n and_o be_v after_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o ezekiel_n it_o a_o hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la per_fw-la librum_fw-la johanni_n carthus_n ostensum_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la scientia_fw-la ●…orum_fw-la quae_fw-la johanni_n fuerant_fw-la de_fw-la futuro_fw-la statu_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la revelanda_fw-la quae_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la apocalypsis_n volumine_fw-la sant_z descripta_fw-la so_o here_o by_o a_o book_n show_v to_o s._n john_n be_v understand_v the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v reveal_v to_o saint_n john_n concern_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n to_o come_v and_o which_o now_o be_v describe_v in_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n always_o that_o s._n john_n see_v this_o book_n write_v within_o within_o and_o without_o it_o be_v to_o declare_v unto_o we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o complete_a prophecy_n there_o be_v no_o blank_a paper_n in_o this_o book_n to_o be_v fill_v up_o by_o any_o other_o or_o if_o there_o be_v who_o be_v this_o in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n that_o can_v reveal_v that_o unto_o we_o which_o jesus_n christ_n our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v not_o reveal_v none_o at_o all_o we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v for_o any_o other_o revelation_n or_o prophecy_n after_o this_o till_o the_o day_n come_v wherein_o christ_n our_o lord_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o glory_n seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n the_o seal_n declare_v secrecy_n first_o the_o surety_n next_o the_o secrecy_n of_o this_o prophecy_n surety_n it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o king_n to_o seal_v their_o decree_n which_o they_o will_v have_v execute_v so_o this_o book_n be_v seal_v to_o show_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v sure_o accomplish_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o it_o it_o be_v a_o decree_n more_o sure_a than_o any_o of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n papist_n again_o the_o seal_n declare_v the_o secrecy_n thereof_o here_o be_v mystery_n lock_v up_o from_o the_o understanding_n of_o angel_n and_o man_n if_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o open_v they_o and_o reveal_v they_o unto_o us._n the_o jesuite_n viega_n carp_v advantage_n here_o to_o instifie_v that_o calumny_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whereby_o they_o blot_v the_o scripture_n with_o obscurity_n &_o he_o bring_v many_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v expedient_a the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v be_v pen_v in_o obscure_a manner_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o lie_v not_o this_o unsure_a reason_n the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v obscure_a therefore_o all_o the_o book_n they_o of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v obscure_a and_o since_o they_o can_v look_v to_o the_o seal_n wherewith_o the_o book_n be_v close_v &_o complain_v of_o obscurity_n why_o will_v they_o not_o look_v to_o the_o lamb_n who_o open_v the_o book_n &_o give_v he_o thanks_n who_o of_o a_o close_a book_n make_v it_o a_o open_a book_n and_o give_v to_o it_o the_o name_n of_o a_o revelation_n last_o as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o this_o book_n be_v write_v not_o so_o much_o to_o inform_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n as_o to_o confirm_v we_o in_o it_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o leave_v the_o faith_n for_o these_o manifold_a trouble_n which_o in_o this_o book_n be_v foretell_v we_o that_o be_v to_o follow_v our_o faith_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o in_o these_o book_n wherein_o the_o lord_n teach_v we_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n he_o speak_v so_o plain_o that_o the_o entrance_n into_o his_o word_n show_v 130._o light_a and_o give_v understand_v to_o the_o simple_a the_o 9_o water_n thereof_o in_o some_o place_n be_v so_o shallow_a that_o a_o child_n may_v go_v through_o though_o in_o other_o so_o deep_a that_o a_o elephant_n may_v swim_v in_o his_o quae_fw-la aperte_fw-la posita_fw-la su●…t_fw-la in_o scriptura_fw-la inveniuntur_fw-la illa_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la continent_n fidem_fw-la moresque_fw-la vivendi_fw-la spem_fw-la scilicet_fw-la &_o charitatem_fw-la what_o need_v man_n carp_v at_o these_o place_n which_o be_v obscure_a since_o in_o these_o which_o be_v plain_o write_v all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v find_v that_o contain_v faith_n and_o good_a manner_n to_o wit_n hope_n and_o charity_n say_v augustine_n num_fw-la igitur_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o 21._o mentis_fw-la &_o vocis_fw-la &_o linguae_fw-la artifex_n diserte_n loqui_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la imo_fw-la vero_fw-la summa_fw-la providentia_fw-la career_n voluit_fw-la fuco_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la divina_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la intelligerent_fw-la quae_fw-la ipse_fw-la omnibus_fw-la loquebatur_fw-la shall_v we_o think_v say_v lactantius_n that_o god_n who_o be_v the_o artificer_n and_o maker_n both_o of_o the_o mind_n and_o voice_n and_o of_o the_o tongue_n can_v mislike_v speak_v plain_o no_o but_o by_o the_o contrary_n he_o have_v most_o wise_o provide_v that_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v plain_a without_o colour_a deceit_n that_o all_o man_n may_v understand_v these_o thing_n which_o he_o speak_v unto_o all_o i_o will_v not_o therefore_o answer_v viega_n and_o his_o associate_n with_o chrysostome_n praetextus_n iste_fw-la pigritiae_fw-la vetamen_fw-la lazaro_n but_o rather_o will_v say_v it_o be_v malitiae_fw-la velamen_fw-la this_o pretext_n of_o the_o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n be_v but_o a_o cover_n of_o their_o slothfulness_n but_o rather_o it_o be_v a_o cover_n of_o their_o maliciousness_n because_o the_o scripture_n rebuke_n they_o therefore_o they_o rebuke_v it_o they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o obscure_v it_o because_o it_o obscure_v their_o kingdom_n verse_n 2._o and_o i_o see_v a_o strong_a angel_n who_o preach_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n who_o be_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n and_o to_o loose_v the_o seal_v thereof_o in_o the_o first_o verse_n we_o have_v see_v the_o description_n book_n of_o this_o book_n now_o begin_v the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n wherein_o we_o have_v he_o describe_v who_o open_v the_o book_n first_o from_o his_o singular_a supereminence_n that_o none_o other_o be_v find_v able_a to_o open_v the_o book_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o angel_n his_o proclamation_n who_o be_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n the_o answer_n be_v subjoin_v in_o a_o negation_n none_o in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n so_o this_o do_v great_o magnify_v the_o glory_n of_o jesus_n that_o he_o and_o he_o only_o have_v do_v that_o unto_o we_o and_o for_o we_o which_o none_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n be_v able_a to_o have_v do_v the_o office_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v three_o he_o be_v the_o prophetical_a king_n the_o priest_n and_o prophet_n of_o his_o church_n if_o these_o be_v compare_v among_o themselves_o the_o prophetical_a office_n will_v be_v find_v the_o least_o as_o our_o high_a priest_n he_o have_v to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o we_o and_o make_v atonement_n for_o our_o sin_n as_o our_o king_n hehath_fw-mi deliver_v we_o from_o the_o oppression_n of_o our_o enemy_n visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o rule_v our_o heart_n by_o the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o grace_n as_o our_o prophet_n he_o have_v reveal_v to_o we_o in_o his_o holy_a scripture_n the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v our_o salvation_n and_o in_o this_o prophecy_n have_v forewarn_v his_o church_n of_o such_o trouble_v as_o be_v imminent_a unto_o she_o which_o none_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n be_v able_a to_o do_v now_o since_o the_o last_o and_o least_o of_o the_o himself_o three_o can_v be_v do_v by_o any_o creature_n what_o blasphemy_n be_v it_o to_o say_v that_o man_n may_v do_v the_o great_a that_o be_v by_o their_o own_o suffering_n and_o do_n make_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n as_o the_o romish_a church_n vain_o and_o wicked_o do_v affirm_v for_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o reveal_v 2._o the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v imperfect_a and_o be_v to_o be_v supply_v by_o tradition_n quas_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la suscipit_fw-la ac_fw-la veneratur_fw-la pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la &_o reverentia_fw-la scilicet_fw-la atqui_fw-la ipsum_fw-la verbum_fw-la scriptum_fw-la which_o the_o catholic_a church_n embrace_n and_o honour_v with_o the_o same_o affection_n of_o piety_n and_o reverence_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o write_a word_n itself_o but_o i_o pray_v they_o who_o be_v able_a 〈◊〉_d to_o teach_v that_o which_o the_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o teach_v if_o there_o be_v any_o seal_n of_o the_o book_n which_o christ_n have_v not_o open_v who_o be_v this_o that_o be_v able_a to_o open_v it_o either_o they_o must_v confess_v none_o in_o heaven_n sarre_o less_o in_o earth_n can_v do_v it_o or_o else_o they_o must_v falsify_v this_o angel_n which_o be_v impossible_a or_o then_o manifest_v themselves_o to_o be_v falsisier_n which_o be_v evident_a all_o antiquity_n plead_v the_o perfection_n of_o holy_a scripture_n against_o they_o religio_fw-la vera_fw-la in_o scriptis_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la &_o prophetarum_fw-la tryph._n continetur_fw-la
the_o right_a way_n that_o he_o go_v not_o where-away_a he_o will_v himself_o but_o as_o the_o rider_n direct_v he_o so_o be_v it_o with_o preacher_n we_o be_v many_o time_n incline_v to_o faint_v and_o loiter_v in_o our_o call_n to_o waken_v we_o some_o canaanite_n must_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o be_v prick_n in_o our_o side_n or_o else_o within_o we_o god_n stir_v up_o our_o own_o conscience_n to_o put_v upon_o us._n and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o he_o bridle_v the_o mouth_n of_o his_o servant_n he_o open_v they_o to_o speak_v how_o and_o when_o he_o please_v in_o that_o hour_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o what_o you_o shall_v 20._o say_v for_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n that_o speak_v in_o you_o again_o he_o close_v their_o not_o mouth_n when_o he_o see_v it_o expedient_a so_o say_v he_o to_o ezekiel_n i_o shall_v cause_v thy_o tongue_n clean_o to_o the_o roof_n of_o thy_o mouth_n in_o a_o word_n as_o i_o say_v before_o that_o he_o carry_v preacher_n from_o place_n to_o place_n according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n so_o in_o preach_v he_o carry_v they_o from_o purpose_n to_o purpose_n he_o put_v in_o their_o head_n that_o which_o they_o intend_v not_o to_o have_v speak_v he_o make_v they_o forget_v that_o which_o they_o think_v sure_a to_o have_v deliver_v and_o so_o overrule_v their_o memory_n and_o bridle_v their_o mouth_n that_o still_o he_o make_v they_o his_o own_o purpose_n happy_a yea_o thrice_o happy_a be_v they_o who_o this_o way_n be_v rule_v by_o the_o lord_n a_o notable_a example_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o augustine_n augustine_n for_o possidonius_fw-la record_v of_o he_o that_o in_o a_o certain_a sermon_n his_o memory_n fail_v he_o and_o that_o beside_o augustini_fw-la his_o intention_n and_o purpose_n he_o fall_v out_o into_o a_o discourse_n against_o the_o manichaean_o when_o he_o be_v come_v home_o he_o demand_v of_o they_o who_o dine_v with_o he_o if_o they_o have_v mark_v it_o they_o say_v indeed_o they_o have_v to_o who_o he_o answer_v credo_fw-la quod_fw-la forte_fw-fr aliquem_fw-la errantem_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la dominus_fw-la per_fw-la nostram_fw-la oblivionem_fw-la et_fw-la errorem_fw-la doceri_fw-la &_o curari_fw-la voluerit_fw-la it_o may_v be_v as_o i_o think_v that_o by_o my_o oblivion_n and_o miscarry_v from_o my_o purpose_n to_o speak_v against_o that_o heresy_n god_n will_v have_v some_o among_o the_o people_n to_o be_v teach_v and_o cure_v of_o it_o no_o in_o eius_fw-la manu_fw-la sunt_fw-la et_fw-la nos_fw-la et_fw-la sermon_n nostri_fw-la for_o in_o his_o hand_n be_v both_o ourselves_o and_o our_o speech_n to_o frame_v they_o as_o he_o will_n and_o so_o indeed_o it_o be_v as_o the_o man_n of_o god_n take_v it_o for_o within_o two_o day_n firmus_n a_o manichaean_n come_v to_o he_o and_o show_v he_o how_o by_o the_o same_o sermon_n he_o have_v be_v convert_v vnde_fw-la stupentes_fw-la glorificavimus_fw-la sanctum_fw-la eius_fw-la nomen_fw-la qui_fw-la cum_fw-la voluerit_fw-la et_fw-la unde_fw-la voluerit_fw-la et_fw-la quomodo_fw-la voluerit_fw-la et_fw-la per_fw-la scientes_fw-la et_fw-la nescientes_fw-la salutem_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la operatur_fw-la whereupon_o they_o who_o be_v in_o augustine_n company_n much_o astonish_v glorify_v the_o holy_a not_o name_n of_o god_n who_o when_o he_o will_v and_o as_o he_o will_v by_o wit_v &_o unwitting_a preacher_n work_v the_o salvation_n of_o saint_n let_v this_o glory_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o lord_n he_o work_v salvation_n oftentimes_o by_o preacher_n that_o preacher_n know_v not_o of_o themselves_o the_o preacher_n know_v not_o your_o trouble_n your_o tentation_n nor_o the_o estate_n of_o your_o soul_n yet_o every_o professor_n prepare_v reverent_o to_o hear_v think_v that_o the_o preacher_n speak_v unto_o he_o but_o this_o as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n who_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o one_o speak_v and_o work_v in_o many_o as_o he_o will_n the_o three_o point_n be_v the_o colour_n of_o the_o horse_n he_o be_v thing_n say_v to_o be_v a_o white_a horse_n the_o white_a colour_n note_v two_o thing_n first_o purity_n and_o holiness_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o preacher_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o ride_v upon_o unclean_a beast_n nor_o have_v his_o name_n carry_v through_o the_o world_n by_o profane_a man_n he_o will_v not_o he_o can_v preacher_n work_v with_o a_o unsanctified_a ministry_n a_o fearful_a example_n whereof_o we_o have_v ●…in_n ophni_n and_o phinees_n two_o son_n of_o eli_n with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o life_n they_o have_v make_v the_o people_n to_o abhor_v the_o sacrifice_n 17._o of_o god_n yet_o think_v they_o to_o cover_v the_o injury_n 16._o under_o the_o garment_n of_o god_n and_o to_o save_v themselves_o in_o battle_n against_o the_o philistines_n by_o bear_v the_o ark_n of_o god_n on_o their_o shoulder_n yet_o be_v the_o lord_n so_o displease_v with_o they_o that_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v his_o ark_n to_o be_v captive_v of_o uncircumcised_a philistines_n then_o to_o maintain_v it_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o so_o profane_a man_n as_o they_o be_v they_o suffer_v their_o just_a deserve_a punishment_n but_o the_o lord_n plead_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o bring_v home_o the_o ark_n again_o let_v they_o therefore_o be_v clean_a who_o carry_v the_o vessel_n of_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o study_v to_o be_v holy_a the_o lord_n will_v not_o ride_v but_o upon_o white_a horse_n vita_fw-la munda_fw-la ipsa_fw-la est_fw-la luce_fw-fr fulgentior_fw-la a_o holy_a life_n 15._o be_v bright_a than_o light_n itself_o second_o the_o white_a colour_n signify_v the_o joyfulness_n bring_v of_o the_o message_n which_o they_o bring_v there_o be_v no_o black_a nor_o doleful_a thing_n in_o it_o in_o holy_a scripture_n when_o angel_n appear_v to_o bring_v good_a tiding_n we_o find_v they_o clothe_v in_o white_a and_o among_o man_n it_o have_v be_v customable_o use_v for_o a_o sign_n of_o gladness_n the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o solemn_a triumph_n have_v their_o chariot_n draw_v with_o laetu●…_n white_a horse_n pomponius_n write_v of_o the_o horse_n which_o draw_v dioclesian_n his_o chariot_n quòd_fw-la candore_fw-la cum_fw-la nive_fw-la certabant_fw-la that_o in_o whiteness_n they_o contend_v with_o the_o snow_n so_o then_o by_o the_o white_a horse_n the_o gospel_n 9_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o joyful_a message_n rejoice_v o_o zion_n for_o thy_o king_n come_v ride_v unto_o thou_o and_o that_o upon_o his_o white_a horse_n in_o token_n of_o joy_n to_o his_o own_o and_o triumphant_a victory_n over_o his_o enemy_n great_a joy_n be_v in_o jerusalem_n when_o david_n bring_v the_o ark_n into_o it_o great_a joy_n in_o samaria_n when_o philip_n preach_v the_o gospel_n unto_o they_o beautiful_a be_v 8._o 7._o the_o foot_n of_o they_o who_o bring_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o peace_n but_o miserable_a be_v they_o who_o find_v neither_o peace_n nor_o joy_n in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n these_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o doleful_a tiding_n abide_v they_o the_o four_o point_n to_o be_v consider_v here_o be_v his_o armour_n he_o have_v a_o bow_n no_o mention_n be_v make_v here_o arrow_n of_o arrow_n but_o in_o the_o 45._o psalm_n arrow_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o without_o mention_n of_o a_o bow_n thy_o arrow_n be_v sharp_a to_o pierce_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o king_n enemy_n thus_o collation_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o best_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n in_o old_a time_n the_o chief_a weapon_n use_v in_o war_n be_v bow_n and_o sling_n the_o 5._o one_o we_o may_v see_v out_o of_o the_o psalmist_n the_o child_n of_o 9_o ephraim_n be_v arm_v and_o shoot_v with_o the_o bow_n turn_v back_o in_o the_o day_n of_o battle_n the_o other_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n the_o beniamite_n have_v seven_o hundred_o 16._o choose_a man_n who_o can_v sling_v stone_n at_o a_o hair_n breadth_n and_o not_o fail_v our_o lord_n then_o be_v a_o man_n of_o war_n a_o expert_a archer_n archer_n he_o hit_v the_o mark_n whereat_o he_o shoot_v and_o fail_v not_o it_o be_v long_o ere_o he_o bend_v his_o bow_n and_o when_o he_o have_v bend_v the_o long_o he_o draw_v the_o deep_a he_o fasten_v his_o arrow_n quò_fw-la diutiùs_fw-la expectat_fw-la districtiùs_fw-la iudicabit_fw-la let_v not_o wicked_a man_n please_v themselves_o in_o their_o sin_n because_o the_o lord_n spare_v to_o shoot_v at_o they_o the_o lord_n laugh_v the_o wicked_a to_o 13._o 4._o scorn_v because_o he_o see_v his_o day_n come_v let_v the_o patience_n of_o god_n lead_v man_n to_o repentance_n for_o except_o 13._o they_o turn_v he_o have_v bend_v his_o bow_n and_o make_v it_o ready_a he_o have_v prepare_v he_o deadly_a weapon_n &_o will_v ordain_v his_o arrow_n for_o they_o that_o persecute_v his_o saint_n jesus_n two_o sort_n of_o arrow_n shoot_v the_o lord_n
then_o may_v suffice_v his_o own_o belly_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o the_o famine_n threaten_v degree_n here_o be_v not_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n wherewith_o afterward_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o punish_v they_o for_o here_o wine_n and_o oil_n be_v spare_v which_o in_o great_a famine_n have_v be_v altogether_o take_v away_o for_o except_v small_a judgement_n be_v contemn_v the_o lord_n proceed_v not_o unto_o grèater_n mercy_n please_v he_o rather_o than_o judgement_n but_o if_o mercy_n be_v despise_v the_o judgement_n be_v double_v according_a to_o that_o threaten_n if_o you_o will_v not_o for_o all_o these_o 18._o thing_n obey_v i_o i_o will_v punish_v you_o seven_o time_n more_o according_a to_o your_o sin_n and_o if_o you_o walk_v stubborne_o 29._o against_o i_o and_o will_v not_o obey_v i_o then_o will_v i_o walk_v stubborne_o against_o you_o in_o my_o anger_n and_o you_o shall_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o your_o son_n and_o daughter_n such_o be_v the_o famine_n inflict_v upon_o samaria_n and_o jerusalem_n that_o tender_a woman_n have_v be_v force_v for_o hunger_n to_o eat_v their_o child_n not_o of_o a_o span_n long_o a_o 20._o horrible_a thing_n to_o hear_v that_o the_o infant_n new_o come_v out_o of_o the_o womb_n shall_v be_v devour_v at_o the_o mouth_n and_o send_v into_o the_o womb_n again_o yet_o as_o i_o say_v jeremie_n record_v it_o to_o have_v be_v do_v at_o the_o first_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o chaldaean_n and_o josephus_n record_v the_o same_o at_o the_o second_o destruction_n thereof_o by_o the_o roman_n but_o since_o this_o prophecy_n and_o the_o time_n thereof_o impenitency_n this_o plague_n have_v increase_v above_o that_o which_o here_o be_v denounce_v among_o many_o other_o fearful_a be_v that_o famine_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o day_n of_o justinian_n hunger_n overcome_v humane_a affection_n force_a man_n to_o feed_v upon_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n it_o be_v 108._o record_v that_o two_o woman_n be_v find_v to_o have_v slay_v and_o eat_v seventeen_o man_n and_o man_n debilitat_fw-la &_o weaken_v with_o famine_n bow_v themselves_o to_o creep_v on_o their_o knee_n and_o arm_n that_o with_o their_o tooth_n they_o may_v pull_v any_o green_a fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o beast_n fall_v down_o and_o tumble_v over_o for_o lack_n of_o strength_n and_o so_o die_v there_o be_v none_o to_o bury_v they_o when_o we_o read_v of_o the_o like_a of_o these_o fearful_a judgement_n it_o shall_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o praise_v the_o lord_n for_o his_o great_a indulgence_n and_o patience_n towards_o we_o who_o notwithstanding_o our_o great_a sin_n against_o his_o majesty_n yet_o have_v he_o not_o visit_v we_o with_o the_o like_a plague_n his_o holy_a name_n be_v praise_v therefore_o and_o the_o lord_n give_v we_o grace_n that_o his_o patience_n may_v lead_v we_o to_o repentance_n 4._o verse_n 7._o 8._o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o four_o seal_n i_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o four_o live_v creature_n say_v come_v and_o see_v and_o i_o look_v and_o behold_v a_o pale_a horse_n and_o his_o name_n that_o sit_v on_o he_o be_v death_n and_o hell_n follow_v after_o he_o and_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o over_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o kill_v with_o sword_n and_o with_o hunger_n and_o with_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n when_o the_o lord_n time_n by_o it_o proclaim_v his_o law_n on_o mount_n sinai_n wax_v loud_o and_o loud_o so_o here_o the_o denunciation_n of_o his_o judgement_n wax_v great_a and_o great_a for_o his_o wrath_n increase_v like_o a_o fire_n where_o it_o be_v not_o slacken_v and_o quench_v with_o the_o tear_n of_o repentance_n hitherto_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o sword_n and_o famine_n have_v be_v threaten_v to_o take_v vengeance_n on_o man_n for_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n now_o follow_v the_o plague_n of_o pestilence_n and_o devour_a beast_n yet_o be_v it_o to_o be_v mark_v that_o mercy_n be_v first_o offer_v execute_v before_o judgement_n the_o rider_n on_o the_o white_a horse_n come_v with_o the_o message_n of_o mercy_n grace_n &_o peace_n if_o man_n receive_v it_o not_o than_o the_o lord_n proceed_v to_o judgement_n under_o the_o law_n as_o the_o people_n pass_v over_o jordan_n there_o be_v six_o of_o their_o tribe_n or_o principal_a man_n choose_v out_o of_o they_o &_o appoint_v to_o stand_v on_o mount_n gerizzim_n to_o bless_v the_o people_n if_o they_o shall_v 13_o obey_v other_o six_o again_o to_o stand_v upon_o mount_n ebal_n to_o curse_v they_o if_o they_o shall_v rebel_v under_o the_o gospel_n our_o saviour_n begin_v his_o preach_n first_o with_o blessing_n but_o after_o proceed_v to_o denunciation_n of_o 4._o woe_n the_o apostle_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n say_v we_o 13._o be_v not_o come_v to_o the_o mount_n that_o may_v not_o be_v touch_v but_o we_o be_v come_v to_o mount_n zion_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o lord_n 18._o allure_v by_o mercy_n so_o he_o terrify_v by_o judgement_n if_o mercy_n can_v move_v we_o judgement_n shall_v confound_v we_o and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o mercy_n be_v first_o offer_v and_o we_o refuse_v it_o in_o the_o open_n of_o this_o seal_n we_o have_v first_o the_o seal_n preparation_n second_o the_o vision_n itself_o and_o three_o a_o exposition_n both_o of_o this_o vision_n and_o the_o proceed_n the_o preparation_n contain_v in_o the_o seven_o verse_n be_v coincedent_n with_o the_o former_a and_o i_o pass_v it_o in_o the_o vision_n itself_o we_o have_v three_o thing_n first_o the_o horse_n his_o colour_n be_v pale_a next_o the_o rider_n his_o name_n be_v death_n three_o his_o page_n or_o footman_n follow_v he_o be_v call_v hell_n the_o pale_a horse_n be_v a_o type_n of_o pestilence_n and_o all_o disease_n other_o strange_a and_o uncouth_a disease_n so_o be_v it_o expound_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v which_o give_v we_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o exclude_v all_o other_o interpretation_n pestilence_n be_v one_o of_o the_o lord_n ordinary_a thereof_o judgement_n whereby_o he_o humble_v the_o pride_n of_o man_n when_o i_o send_v my_o four_o sore_a judgement_n upon_o jerusalem_n 14._o the_o sword_n famine_n the_o noisome_a beast_n and_o pestilence_n here_o it_o be_v threaten_v afterward_o at_o diverse_a time_n execute_v as_o the_o history_n record_v which_o justify_v 9_o this_o prophecy_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n four_o score_n vespasian_n be_v emperor_n such_o a_o pest_n 11._o plague_v rome_n that_o for_o many_o day_n ten_o thousand_o people_n die_v in_o a_o day_n in_o the_o year_n two_o hundred_o three_o &_o fifty_o decius_n a_o vile_a persecuter_n there_o be_v no_o 21._o province_n in_o all_o the_o roman_a empire_n no_o city_n no_o house_n which_o pestilence_n pursue_v not_o in_o the_o year_n 2_o two_o hundred_o six_o and_o fifty_o valerian_n another_o bloody_a persecuter_n be_v emperor_n such_o a_o pest_n invade_v alexandria_n that_o famous_a city_n of_o egypt_n that_o in_o so_o 21_o populous_a a_o town_n there_o be_v not_o so_o many_o citizen_n to_o be_v find_v as_o before_o the_o pest_n it_o have_v canos_fw-la repent_v senes_fw-la ancient_a man_n of_o white_a hair_n it_o be_v tedious_a to_o repeat_v all_o we_o want_v not_o domestic_a warn_n the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v come_v among_o we_o but_o for_o our_o unthankfulness_n the_o red_a horse_n the_o black_a and_o the_o pale_a now_o and_o then_o have_v visit_v we_o though_o we_o must_v confess_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n his_o mercy_n that_o in_o most_o gentle_a manner_n the_o lord_n have_v chastise_v we_o yet_o have_v we_o need_v to_o remember_v that_o warning_n of_o the_o gospel_n behold_v thou_o be_v make_v 14._o whole_a sin_n no_o more_o lest_o a_o worse_a thing_n come_v unto_o thou_o for_o certain_o our_o forgetfulness_n of_o the_o lord_n bypass_a gentle_a correction_n our_o unthankfulness_n for_o his_o present_a mercy_n may_v just_o fear_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o enter_v in_o a_o sharp_a course_n against_o we_o if_o we_o amend_v not_o and_o this_o for_o the_o pale_a horse_n now_o he_o who_o ride_v upon_o he_o be_v name_v death_n we_o back_o have_v here_o then_o death_n bring_v in_o ride_v on_o horseback_n to_o signify_v the_o celerity_n and_o speed_n wherewith_o he_o post_v upon_o the_o wicked_a howsoever_o they_o sleep_v in_o careless_a security_n and_o put_v the_o evil_a day_n f●…r_n from_o 3._o they_o yea_o and_o think_v with_o themselves_o that_o they_o 28._o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o death_n and_o hell_n yet_o go_v where_o they_o will_v ride_v where_o they_o will_v go_v and_o ride_v as_o they_o please_v death_n go_v and_o ride_v with_o they_o he_o post_v man_n after_o they_o and_o
signify_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o who_o happy_a fellowship_n and_o society_n now_o they_o live_v sub_fw-la locum_fw-la altari_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la secretario_fw-la laudis_fw-la aeternae_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la sublime_a altar_n triumphantis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la vel_fw-la sub_fw-la christi_fw-la custodia_fw-la et_fw-la quiet_a this_o altar_n be_v in_o heaven_n not_o in_o earth_n it_o be_v the_o high_a altar_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a their_o soul_n be_v in_o custody_n and_o quiet_a rest_n with_o christ._n again_o another_o of_o their_o own_o so_o expound_v it_o sub_fw-la altari_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la sub_fw-la protectione_n et_fw-la confortio_fw-la christi_fw-la cardinal_n under_o the_o altar_n that_o be_v under_o the_o protection_n and_o fellowship_n of_o christ._n this_o altar_n be_v otherwise_o call_v 23._o paradise_n this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n 16._o and_o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n into_o thy_o hand_n o_o lord_n i_o commend_v my_o 7._o spirit_n it_o be_v also_o call_v a_o place_n before_o the_o throne_n where_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o sevenfold_a 24._o spirit_n be_v of_o it_o speak_v our_o saviour_n father_n i_o will_v that_o those_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v where_o i_o be_o this_o be_v the_o place_n of_o glorify_a soul_n neither_o do_v those_o divine_n reason_v very_o divine_o altar_n who_o say_v christ_n can_v be_v this_o altar_n because_o he_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n for_o he_o be_v both_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o sacrificer_n and_o the_o altar_n for_o he_o offer_v himself_o by_o 14._o his_o eternal_a spirit_n there_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n or_o thing_n offer_v and_o the_o sacrificer_n also_o the_o altar_n in_o like_a manner_n he_o must_v be_v for_o the_o altar_n sanctify_v the_o sacrifice_n now_o by_o none_o other_o be_v our_o saviour_n sanctify_v but_o by_o himself_o none_o other_o altar_n can_v commend_v he_o or_o make_v he_o acceptable_a to_o his_o father_n his_o divinity_n sanctify_v his_o humanity_n and_o his_o humanity_n be_v offer_v by_o his_o divinity_n and_o upon_o it_o therefore_o to_o say_v that_o another_o not_o himself_o can_v sacrifice_v he_o or_o that_o he_o can_v be_v sacrifice_v upon_o any_o other_o altar_n but_o upon_o himself_o be_v as_o great_a blasphemy_n as_o to_o bring_v in_o another_o sacrifice_n whereby_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n may_v be_v satisfy_v let_v presumptuous_a blind_a mass_n priest_n consider_v this_o that_o be_v kill_v that_o be_v he_o see_v the_o soul_n of_o fire_n those_o body_n that_o be_v kill_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n death_n then_o we_o see_v strike_v but_o the_o body_n fear_v not_o they_o who_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o can_v do_v no_o more_o 28._o it_o be_v like_a to_o nabuchadnezzar_n his_o fire_n which_o burn_v the_o cord_n wherewith_o the_o three_o child_n be_v ourselves_o bind_v but_o burn_v not_o their_o body_n so_o death_n can_v do_v no_o more_o but_o loose_v our_o band_n and_o set_v our_o soul_n at_o liberty_n what_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o 36._o christ_n shall_v tribulation_n or_o anguish_n or_o persecution_n or_o peril_n or_o sword_n no_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n through_o he_o that_o love_v us._n for_o i_o be_o persuade_v neither_o death_n nor_o life_n can_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ._n let_v it_o come_v and_o disjoin_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n that_o it_o may_v it_o conjoin_v we_o with_o christ._n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o religion_n so_o false_a but_o it_o have_v its_o own_o patroness_n who_o will_v defend_v it_o yea_o and_o dare_v die_v for_o it_o satan_n as_o he_o have_v his_o own_o apostle_n so_o have_v he_o also_o his_o own_o martyr_n martyr_n satanicae_fw-la virtutis_fw-la we_o must_v always_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o cause_n of_o suffer_v non_fw-la poena_fw-la sed_fw-la causa_fw-la facit_fw-la martyrem_fw-la therefore_o he_o join_v these_o two_o for_o the_o word_n and_o testimony_n which_o they_o maintain_v it_o be_v nothing_o to_o stand_v to_o a_o testimony_n nay_o though_o thou_o shall_v die_v for_o it_o unless_o thou_o justify_v by_o the_o word_n that_o thy_o testimony_n be_v true_a verse_n 10._o and_o they_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n say_v how_o long_a lord_n holy_a and_o true_a do_v thou_o not_o judge_v and_o avenge_v our_o blood_n on_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n now_o follow_v in_o this_o verse_n the_o supplication_n desire_n which_o these_o soul_n of_o martyr_n send_v up_o to_o god_n &_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n the_o answer_n which_o be_v give_v they_o the_o voice_n by_o which_o they_o send_v up_o their_o supplication_n be_v call_v a_o cry_v not_o vocal_a but_o spiritual_a note_v the_o fervency_n of_o their_o desire_n for_o the_o word_n of_o soul_n whereby_o they_o speak_v unto_o god_n be_v their_o fervent_a desire_n magnus_fw-la eorum_fw-la clamour_n magnum_fw-la est_fw-la 6._o desiderium_fw-la tum_fw-la resurrectionis_fw-la tum_fw-la judicii_fw-la their_o great_a cry_n be_v their_o great_a desire_n both_o of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v a_o small_a desire_n make_v but_o a_o small_a voice_n in_o the_o lord_n ear_n but_o a_o servant_n desire_n cause_v a_o loud_a voice_n animarum_fw-la ibid._n igitur_fw-la verba_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sunt_fw-la desideria_fw-la si_fw-la desiderium_fw-la sermo_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la non_fw-la diceret_fw-la propheta_fw-la desiderium_fw-la cordis_fw-la eorum_fw-la andivit_fw-la auris_fw-la tua_fw-la that_o be_v if_o the_o 17._o desire_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o a_o speech_n unto_o god_n the_o prophet_n will_v not_o have_v say_v thou_o have_v hear_v the_o desire_n of_o their_o heart_n how_o long_o lord_n it_o be_v here_o demand_v how_o be_v vengeance_n this_o that_o saint_n cry_v for_o vengeance_n be_v we_o not_o command_v to_o love_v our_o enemy_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o to_o this_o some_o divine_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o they_o but_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o wicked_a do_v to_o they_o that_o cry_v for_o a_o vengeance_n and_o they_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v four_o cry_a sin_n first_o the_o filthy_a sin_n of_o sin_n sodom_n because_o the_o cry_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorah_n be_v 21_o great_a i_o will_v go_v down_o now_o and_o see_v whether_o if_o or_o not_o they_o have_v do_v altogether_o according_a to_o the_o cry_n which_o be_v come_v unto_o i_o next_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o widow_n and_o fatherless_a thou_o shall_v not_o trouble_v any_o widow_n nor_o 23_o fatherless_a child_n if_o thou_o trouble_v such_o and_o he_o cry_v unto_o i_o i_o will_v hear_v his_o cry_n three_o the_o detain_v fraudulent_o of_o the_o wage_n of_o workman_n be_v also_o a_o cry_a sin_n thou_o shall_v give_v a_o hire_a servant_n his_o 15_o hire_n for_o his_o day_n for_o he_o be_v poor_a and_o therewith_o sustain_v his_o life_n lest_o he_o cry_v against_o thou_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o it_o be_v sin_n unto_o thou_o and_o again_o the_o hire_n of_o 4._o the_o labourer_n hold_v back_o by_o fraud_n cry_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n four_o innocent_a blood_n cry_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o vengeance_n against_o they_o that_o shed_v it_o the_o voice_n of_o thy_o brother_n 10._o blood_n cry_v to_o i_o from_o the_o ground_n and_o so_o here_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n cry_n glory_n but_o there_o be_v here_o further_o to_o be_v add_v that_o this_o cry_n of_o they_o be_v their_o own_o and_o proceed_v not_o of_o any_o passion_n or_o desire_v of_o their_o private_a revenge_n but_o only_o of_o a_o zeal_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n who_o holiness_n and_o truth_n they_o desire_v to_o be_v manifest_v as_o may_v be_v perceive_v by_o the_o title_n they_o give_v the_o lord_n in_o their_o prayer_n non_fw-la carnali_fw-la sensu_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la eos_fw-la animositate_fw-la locum_fw-la ultionis_fw-la accendi_fw-la sed_fw-la manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la potestatem_fw-la &_o regnum_fw-la peccati_fw-la or_o ass_n adueniat_fw-la regnum_fw-la tuum_fw-la we_o be_v not_o with_o carnal_a sense_n to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v kindle_v with_o any_o heat_n of_o revenge_n it_o be_v manifest_a they_o pray_v against_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o effect_n the_o sum_n of_o their_o prayer_n be_v lord_n let_v thy_o kingdom_n come_v quid_fw-la est_fw-la animas_fw-la 6._o vindictae_fw-la petitionem_fw-la dicere_fw-la nisi_fw-la diem_fw-la extremum_fw-la judicii_fw-la &_o resurrectionem_fw-la corporum_fw-la desiderare_fw-la what_o else_o be_v it_o that_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o cry_v for_o to_o be_v avenge_v but_o that_o they_o earnest_o desire_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n themselves_o hoc_fw-la dicunt_fw-la non_fw-la poenam_fw-la malis_fw-la optando_fw-la sed_fw-la voluntati_fw-la dei_fw-la
se_fw-la conformando_fw-la de_fw-la cvius_fw-la impletione_fw-la gaudent_fw-la ita_fw-la enim_fw-la sunt_fw-la coniuncti_fw-la deo_fw-la ut_fw-la de_fw-la omni_fw-la volito_fw-la dei_fw-la gaudeant_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o poenis_fw-la parentum_fw-la iuxta_fw-la illud_fw-la laetabitur_fw-la iustus_fw-la cum_fw-la viderit_fw-la vindictam_fw-la so_o they_o pray_v not_o wish_v punishment_n to_o evil_a man_n but_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v so_o conjoin_v unto_o god_n that_o they_o rejoice_v in_o every_o thing_n which_o be_v his_o will_n yea_o and_o it_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o their_o parent_n according_a to_o that_o the_o righteous_a 11._o shall_v rejoice_v when_o he_o see_v the_o vengeance_n and_o man_n shall_v say_v very_o there_o be_v fruit_n for_o the_o righteous_a and_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o judge_n in_o the_o earth_n they_o give_v unto_o the_o lord_n two_o title_n holy_a and_o true_a it_o be_v customable_a to_o saint_n in_o their_o prayer_n unto_o god_n to_o give_v unto_o the_o lord_n such_o style_n as_o in_o answer_n effect_n contain_v argument_n both_o to_o move_v the_o lord_n to_o hear_v they_o and_o to_o confirm_v themselves_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o a_o favourable_a answer_n and_o so_o do_v they_o here_o because_o thou_o lord_n be_v holy_a thou_o can_v not_o let_v iniquity_n escape_v unpunished_a for_o ever_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o take_v the_o wicked_a by_o the_o hand_n neither_o have_v 20._o his_o throne_n any_o fellowship_n with_o iniquity_n and_o because_o thou_o be_v true_a thou_o can_v not_o but_o perform_v thy_o word_n of_o mercy_n promise_v to_o thy_o own_o and_o of_o judgement_n threaten_v against_o the_o wicked_a how_o long_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o they_o who_o want_v why_o something_o which_o they_o will_v earnest_o have_v and_o assure_o expect_v they_o want_v their_o body_n they_o want_v their_o brethren_n for_o these_o they_o cry_v as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o they_o have_v now_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o heaven_n but_o not_o perfect_a so_o long_o as_o they_o want_v these_o two_o god_n have_v so_o provide_v that_o they_o without_o we_o 40._o shall_v not_o be_v perfect_v neque_fw-la enim_fw-la praestari_fw-la dec●…t_fw-la 3._o integram_fw-la beatitudinem_fw-la d●…nec_fw-la sit_fw-la homo_fw-la integer_fw-la cui_fw-la detur_fw-la nec_fw-la perfectione_n donari_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la imperfectam_fw-la for_o it_o be_v not_o seemly_a that_o complete_a felicity_n shall_v be_v give_v till_o the_o man_n be_v complete_a to_o who_o it_o be_v to_o be_v give_v nor_o yet_o that_o a_o imperfect_a church_n shall_v be_v gift_v with_o perfection_n but_o because_o the_o jesuite_n ribera_n see_v this_o sentence_n locum_fw-la to_o destroy_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n he_o will_v have_v it_o heretical_a and_o spare_v not_o to_o false_o charge_n irenaeus_n teytulltan_n origen_n ambrose_n bernard_n with_o luther_n and_o calvin_n as_o heretic_n because_o according_a to_o the_o manifest_a truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n they_o maintain_v with_o the_o apostle_n that_o saint_n depart_v howsoever_o they_o be_v glorify_v yet_o be_v not_o perfect_v till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o resurrection_n come_v now_o concern_v prayer_n make_v by_o they_o who_o be_v in_o heaven_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o judge_n and_o avenge_v these_o be_v two_o work_n proper_a execution_n to_o the_o lord_n first_o he_o judge_n this_o pertain_v to_o cognition_n then_o he_o avenge_n this_o pertain_v to_o execution_n this_o order_n of_o process_n the_o lord_n always_o keep_v as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o his_o first_o judicial_a court_n against_o adam_n euah_n satan_n serpent_n as_o likewise_o in_o his_o proceed_n against_o sodom_n learn_v all_o judge_n 25._o to_o try_v before_o they_o give_v sentence_n abraham_n call_v he_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n who_o can_v do_v unrighteous_o the_o psalmist_n again_o style_v he_o o_o god_n 1._o the_o avenger_n it_o be_v a_o sacrilegious_a violation_n of_o his_o glory_n for_o any_o flesh_n to_o usurp_v these_o office_n judge_v lord_n not_o lest_o you_o be_v judge_v say_v our_o saviour_n who_o be_v thou_o that_o judge_v another_o man_n servant_n he_o stand_v or_o fall_v 1._o to_o his_o master_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o as_o for_o vengeance_n 4._o it_o be_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v repay_v yet_o 19_o proud_a flesh_n will_v presume_v to_o judge_v where_o it_o can_v avenge_v and_o ofttimes_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o avenge_v if_o not_o with_o the_o hand_n at_o least_o with_o the_o tongue_n where_o they_o can_v judge_v these_o know_v not_o they_o offer_v strange_a fire_n to_o the_o lord_n with_o nadab_n and_o abihu_n which_o at_o length_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o return_v and_o consume_v themselves_o on_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o earth_n oftentimes_o in_o earth_n this_o book_n be_v the_o wicked_a describe_v to_o be_v indweller_n of_o the_o earth_n non_fw-la solum_fw-la corporis_fw-la habitatione_n sed_fw-la mentis_fw-la affectione_n not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o corporal_a habitation_n but_o much_o more_o for_o their_o affection_n which_o be_v altogether_o set_v upon_o earth_n it_o be_v their_o jericho_n pleasant_a for_o situation_n but_o let_v they_o remember_v 2._o the_o water_n thereof_o be_v deadly_a &_o their_o ground_n barren_a their_o divitiae_fw-la and_o deliciae_fw-la will_v both_o deceive_v they_o at_o length_n but_o of_o this_o see_v verse_n 11._o and_o long_o white_a robe_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o and_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v rest_v for_o a_o little_a season_n until_o their_o fellow_n servant_n and_o brethren_n that_o shall_v be_v kill_v even_o as_o they_o be_v be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o last_o verse_n we_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n answer_n now_o follow_v the_o answer_n which_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o their_o prayer_n be_v not_o pour_v out_o in_o vain_a when_o the_o lord_n dispose_v the_o heart_n to_o pray_v it_o be_v a_o sure_a token_n of_o a_o favourable_a answer_n to_o follow_v this_o be_v the_o lord_n praise_v thou_o prepare_v the_o heart_n and_o bende_v thy_o ear_n unto_o they_o the_o answer_n of_o their_o supplication_n be_v two_o way_n speech_n give_v first_o by_o a_o sign_n long_o white_a robe_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o next_o by_o plain_a speech_n it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v rest_v till_o their_o fellow_n servant_n be_v fulfil_v the_o white_a robe_n be_v sometime_o a_o type_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o sometime_o a_o signify_v type_n of_o the_o reward_n thereof_o he_o that_o overcom_v shall_v be_v clothe_v in_o white_a array_n no_o darkness_n nor_o 5._o sorrow_n in_o heaven_n all_o be_v full_a of_o light_n joy_n and_o happiness_n and_o these_o robe_n be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o what_o before_o they_o know_v by_o faith_n now_o they_o know_v by_o feeling_n that_o promise_a reward_n be_v now_o put_v in_o their_o hand_n and_o possession_n here_o they_o have_v it_o in_o spe_fw-mi there_o they_o have_v it_o in_o re_fw-mi and_o more_o particular_o faith_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o robe_n be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o innumerable_a saint_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o into_o heaven_n every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o crown_n every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o white_a robe_n none_o of_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v oversee_v but_o all_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o joy_n and_o glory_n and_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o dictum_fw-la est_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la sanct._n inspiratum_fw-la est_fw-la for_o the_o voice_n whereby_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o saint_n be_v the_o inspiration_n of_o his_o spirit_n this_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o answer_n the_o matter_n or_o effect_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v rest_v for_o a_o little_a season_n the_o whole_a time_n from_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n to_o the_o lord_n second_o come_v be_v call_v a_o little_a season_n and_o by_o this_o same_o evangelist_n in_o his_o epistle_n the_o last_o time_n it_o be_v little_a then_o and_o 18._o short_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v &_o far_o less_o now_o the_o number_n of_o saint_n seal_v the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n with_o their_o blood_n have_v be_v great_o augment_v since_o the_o day_n of_o domitian_n every_o kingdom_n and_o nation_n that_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n have_v render_v off_o their_o witness_n and_o martyr_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o now_o far_o of_o god_n prepare_v we_o for_o it_o again_o it_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o accomplish_v only_a cause_n why_o christ_n second_v come_v be_v delay_v be_v because_o the_o number_n of_o his_o saint_n be_v not_o yet_o accomplish_v the_o blind_a world_n understand_v not_o this_o and_o therefore_o persecute_v they_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n and_o will_v have_v they_o clean_o root_v out_o of_o
the_o earth_n but_o in_o so_o do_v they_o be_v like_o samson_n who_o pull_v down_o the_o house_n of_o dagon_n saint_n upon_o himself_o to_o his_o destruction_n by_o take_v away_o the_o pillar_n that_o uphold_v it_o for_o as_o sodom_n be_v spare_v no_o long_o but_o till_o lot_n be_v out_o of_o it_o so_o if_o the_o lot_n 30._o 19_o or_o elect_a one_o of_o the_o lord_n be_v once_o fulfil_v and_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o world_n certain_o it_o shall_v continue_v and_o endure_v no_o long_o two_o style_n be_v give_v by_o this_o heavenly_a oracle_n to_o saint_n militant_a here_o on_o earth_n both_o very_a comfortable_a we_o be_v call_v brethren_n and_o fellow-servant_n cause_n with_o they_o who_o be_v in_o heaven_n there_o be_v one_o father_n of_o who_o be_v name_v the_o whole_a family_n both_o father_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n all_o the_o servant_n of_o that_o family_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o all_o brethren_n among_o 15._o themselves_o and_o their_o brotherhood_n be_v most_o excellent_a for_o first_o they_o be_v all_o quicken_v spirit_n by_o one_o spirit_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o any_o other_o brethren_n among_o natural_a brethren_n every_o one_o have_v his_o own_o spirit_n but_o for_o spiritual_a or_o christian_a brethren_n they_o be_v all_o quicken_v with_o 26._o one_o spirit_n second_o all_o christian_n have_v one_o inheritance_n father_n and_o one_o mother_n jerusalem_n which_o be_v above_o and_o three_o they_o have_v all_o one_o inheritance_n natural_a brethren_n can_v all_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o their_o father_n but_o christian_n as_o they_o be_v all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o be_v they_o all_o the_o heir_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v the_o inheritance_n diminish_v by_o communication_n thereof_o unto_o so_o many_o the_o other_o be_v that_o we_o be_v call_v their_o fellow-servant_n fellow-servant_n so_o also_o do_v they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v our_o fellow-servant_n conseruus_fw-la tuus_fw-la sum_fw-la i_o be_o 9_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n say_v the_o angel_n to_o saint_n john_n angel_n then_o and_o saint_n glorify_v be_v not_o our_o patroni_fw-la learn_v sed_fw-la conserui_fw-la they_o be_v not_o our_o patron_n that_o by_o our_o prayer_n to_o they_o we_o shall_v seek_v protection_n from_o they_o but_o they_o be_v our_o fellow-servant_n and_o this_o shall_v stir_v we_o up_o in_o all_o carefulness_n to_o be_v answerable_a to_o our_o name_n that_o we_o may_v serve_v and_o praise_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o every_o way_n do_v his_o holy_a will_n in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o in_o heaven_n again_o it_o be_v here_o evident_a that_o the_o number_n of_o god_n saint_n elect_v and_o to_o be_v glorify_v be_v know_v unto_o god_n as_o will_v appear_v more_o plain_o in_o the_o subsequent_a chapter_n he_o have_v they_o all_o in_o a_o roll_n and_o it_o be_v true_a of_o they_o all_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o his_o elect_a disciple_n i_o have_v lose_v none_o of_o those_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o they_o be_v not_o know_v unto_o we_o only_o the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o yet_o be_v every_o particular_a 19_o christian_a bind_v to_o make_v sure_a to_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v of_o that_o number_n prove_v yourselves_o whether_o 5._o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n know_v you_o not_o your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n the_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v in_o god_n his_o unchangeable_a love_n and_o that_o remain_v number_n sure_a but_o the_o token_n of_o salvation_n be_v in_o we_o this_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o his_o foundation_n let_v every_o one_o that_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n depart_v from_o iniquity_n and_o by_o these_o token_n be_v we_o to_o examine_v ourselves_o 19_o whether_o we_o be_v of_o that_o number_n or_o no_o according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n peter_n make_v sure_a your_o call_n and_o 10._o election_n by_o weldooing_a verse_n 12._o and_o i_o behold_v when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o six_o seal_n and_o loc_n there_o be_v a_o great_a earthquake_n and_o the_o sun_n be_v as_o black_a as_o sackcloth_n and_o the_o moon_n like_o blood_n in_o the_o first_o four_o seal_n we_o have_v the_o general_a seal_n course_n of_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n foreshow_v unto_o us._n in_o the_o last_o two_o the_o general_a end_n of_o all_o mankind_n and_o that_o twofold_a according_a to_o their_o two_o rank_n and_o estate_n the_o happy_a end_n of_o the_o godly_a discover_v in_o the_o fist_n seal_v and_o at_o great_a length_n explain_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n the_o tragical_a and_o doleful_a end_n of_o the_o wicked_a foreshow_v in_o this_o six_o seal_n and_o this_o follow_v the_o former_a very_o proper_o in_o they_o the_o fist_n seal_v the_o soul_n of_o saint_n cry_v to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v avenge_v their_o blood_n there_o the_o lord_n promise_v to_o do_v it_o and_o now_o the_o number_n of_o saint_n be_v fulfil_v and_o seal_v the_o lord_n come_v forth_o in_o terrible_a manner_n to_o perform_v it_o by_o execute_v his_o last_o full_a and_o final_a wrath_n upon_o the_o wicked_a which_o judicious_o have_v be_v observe_v by_o his_o majesty_n the_o six_o seal_n be_v a_o accomplishment_n of_o that_o dissolution_n ●…rit_fw-la crave_v and_o promise_v in_o the_o fist_n seal_v the_o order_n let_v much_o we_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n be_v much_o move_v with_o the_o cry_n of_o his_o saint_n if_o that_o unrighteous_a judge_n who_o neither_o fear_v god_n nor_o man_n answer_v the_o 18._o widow_n because_o she_o cry_v instant_o upon_o he_o how_o much_o more_o will_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n who_o 25._o can_v do_v unrighteous_o hear_v his_o saint_n who_o cry_v unto_o he_o night_n and_o day_n certain_o he_o will_v be_v avenge_v of_o their_o enemy_n precious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o 15._o lord_n be_v the_o death_n of_o his_o saint_n this_o vision_n by_o some_o interpreter_n be_v expound_v reason_n allegorical_o as_o if_o it_o foreshow_v defection_n apostasy_n darken_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o obscure_v of_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a this_o i_o confess_v be_v analogall_a to_o faith_n but_o not_o to_o this_o prophecy_n for_o two_o cause_n first_o because_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o gospel_n figure_v by_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n ptophecy_n and_o the_o apostasy_n of_o preacher_n and_o professor_n figure_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o star_n be_v particular_o foreshow_v in_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o trumpet_n which_o contain_v the_o second_o prophecy_n the_o other_o reason_n be_v more_o pungent_a for_o it_o be_v say_v here_o plain_o that_o at_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n at_o the_o departure_n it_o of_o heaven_n &_o fall_v of_o star_n king_n great_a man_n and_o captain_n be_v terrible_o afraid_a and_o therefore_o can_v it_o be_v understand_v of_o apostasy_n and_o defection_n whereof_o they_o themselves_o be_v both_o author_n and_o actor_n be_v it_o the_o obscure_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o make_v they_o to_o cry_v out_o rock_n and_o mountain_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o cover_v we_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o no_o sense_n for_o so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o all_o fear_n for_o that_o matter_n that_o by_o the_o contrary_n they_o rejoice_v in_o it_o and_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n and_o erect_v heresy_n to_o force_v preacher_n and_o professor_n unto_o defection_n and_o in_o so_o do_v they_o think_v they_o do_v good_a service_n unto_o god_n other_o again_o take_v it_o for_o a_o denunciation_n of_o some_o judgement_n external_a and_o temporal_a judgement_n such_o as_o be_v execute_v on_o persecutor_n and_o special_o upon_o dioclesian_n it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n many_o of_o the_o phrase_n use_v here_o be_v use_v also_o to_o express_v fearful_a temporal_a judgement_n threaten_v against_o particular_a state_n and_o person_n of_o wicked_a man_n look_v the_o denunciation_n of_o judgement_n against_o babel_n and_o egypt_n to_o express_v the_o horror_n of_o their_o 10._o plague_n mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o 7._o sun_n and_o moon_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o samaria_n idolatrous_a apostate_n 7._o be_v bring_v in_o crying_z hill_n and_o mountain_n 30._o fall_v upon_o we_o and_o cover_v us._n the_o same_o phrase_n be_v also_o use_v to_o express_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o these_o make_v nothing_o against_o our_o exposition_n for_o temporal_a judgement_n be_v type_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o great_a and_o general_a judgement_n proper_o do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n borrow_v the_o phrase_n of_o holy_a scripture_n use_v in_o denunciation_n of_o
the_o one_o to_o express_v the_o horror_n of_o the_o other_o now_o because_o this_o be_v a_o special_a note_n and_o main_a point_n the_o right_a understanding_n whereof_o will_v give_v answer_v light_n to_o the_o method_n of_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o the_o reason_n move_v sundry_a learned_a interpreter_n to_o think_v that_o this_o seal_n can_v be_v expound_v of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v for_o that_o there_o be_v many_o prophecy_n follow_v which_o must_v be_v fulfil_v before_o that_o day_n but_o this_o difficulty_n shall_v easy_o be_v remove_v if_o they_o consider_v the_o ground_n we_o have_v already_o lay_v out_o of_o primasius_n that_o the_o revelation_n be_v prophetia_fw-la saepius_fw-la repetita_fw-la a_o prophecy_n sundry_a time_n repeat_v and_o diverse_a way_n diduce_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o second_o come_v again_o and_o even_o they_o who_o will_v have_v it_o one_o continue_a prophecy_n the_o late_a chapter_n be_v always_o posterior_n in_o time_n to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o chapter_n precede_v as_o they_o think_v be_v force_v to_o interrupt_v that_o course_n and_o change_v their_o mind_n when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n for_o there_o they_o be_v draw_v back_o judgement_n again_o to_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o day_n of_o christ._n but_o to_o return_v this_o six_o seal_n conclude_v this_o first_o general_a prophecy_n with_o a_o prophetical_a denunciation_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o so_o we_o foretell_v expound_v it_o for_o these_o reason_n beside_o other_o which_o we_o have_v show_v before_o first_o the_o seven_o seal_n have_v no_o proper_a prediction_n of_o it_o own_o as_o the_o precede_a six_o have_n but_o contain_v in_o the_o bosom_n thereof_o seven_o trumpet_n proclaim_v for_o matter_n a_o new_a prophecy_n different_a from_o the_o former_a creature_n next_o here_o be_v a_o universal_a change_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o never_o be_v nor_o never_o will_v be_v but_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n three_o all_o the_o person_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v it_o here_o universal_o judge_v without_o exception_n no_o babylonian_n nor_o egyptian_n nor_o israelites_n only_o but_o all_o the_o wicked_a every_o free_a man_n every_o bond_n man_n four_o it_o be_v express_o call_v in_o the_o text_n the_o lord_n great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n wrath_n and_o last_o the_o like_a prediction_n make_v by_o our_o saviour_n serve_v for_o a_o clear_a commentary_n to_o lead_v we_o to_o expound_v this_o of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o after_o our_o lord_n have_v foretell_v of_o great_a persecution_n so_o apostasy_n heresy_n &_o of_o false_a christ_n which_o be_v to_o come_v he_o subjoin_v and_o immediate_o after_o the_o tribulation_n of_o those_o day_n shall_v the_o sun_n be_v darken_v and_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o give_v her_o light_n and_o the_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o power_n of_o 29._o heaven_n shall_v be_v shake_v now_o that_o these_o speech_n be_v 25._o not_o to_o be_v take_v allegorical_o but_o proper_o as_o contain_v 24._o a_o prediction_n of_o that_o fearful_a concussion_n of_o this_o universe_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v in_o that_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v most_o evident_a by_o that_o which_o follow_v then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o judgement_n man_n in_o the_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o shall_v send_v his_o angel_n with_o a_o great_a sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n and_o they_o shall_v gather_v together_o his_o elect_n from_o the_o four_o wind_n and_o from_o the_o one_o end_n of_o heaven_n to_o the_o other_o thus_o be_v our_o commentary_n make_v clear_a that_o this_o mutation_n of_o the_o creature_n foretell_v here_o shall_v fall_v out_o in_o that_o great_a day_n wherein_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v judge_v the_o quick_a describe_v and_o dead_a this_o terror_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v describe_v from_o twofold_a terrible_a effect_n thereof_o first_o upon_o the_o creature_n insensible_a earth_n iles_n mountain_n heaven_n sun_n moon_n star_n ver_fw-la 12._o 13._o 14._o next_o creature_n upon_o the_o creature_n reasonable_a but_o reprobate_a of_o all_o sort_n ver_fw-la 15._o 16._o 17._o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v a_o great_a earthquake_n the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a import_v more_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o concussion_n of_o the_o universe_n sort_n or_o whole_a fabric_n of_o the_o world_n as_o to_o earthquake_n it_o be_v either_o ordinary_a proceed_v of_o natural_a cause_n air_n enclose_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o else_o extraordinary_a a_o angry_a and_o fearful_a god_n extraordinary_a shake_v the_o earth_n with_o his_o powerful_a hand_n as_o be_v that_o when_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v the_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o like_a manner_n be_v supernatural_a either_o natural_a when_o by_o interposition_n of_o the_o moon_n between_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o earth_n the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v eclipse_v and_o cut_v off_o from_o some_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o else_o it_o be_v supernatural_a such_o as_o be_v that_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n when_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v for_o when_o the_o six_o hour_n be_v come_v darkness_n 33._o arise_v over_o all_o the_o land_n until_o the_o nine_o which_o moveci_fw-fr dionysius_n areopagita_n than_o a_o ethnic_a philosopher_n but_o after_o convert_v by_o saint_n paul_n and_o make_v a_o christian_a after_o he_o 〈◊〉_d consider_v that_o the_o darkness_n can_v not_o be_v natural_a he_o guae_fw-la out_o this_o sentence_n of_o it_o aut_fw-la deus_fw-la nature_n patitur_fw-la of_o it_o mundi_fw-la machina_fw-la dissoluetur_fw-la either_o the_o god_n of_o nature_n now_o suffer_v or_o the_o world_n now_o must_v be_v dissolve_v and_o the_o moon_n be_v like_o blood_n as_o the_o sun_n in_o mean_v that_o day_n shall_v cast_v down_o his_o countenance_n upon_o the_o wicked_a and_o refuse_v to_o give_v they_o light_n because_o they_o refuse_v the_o most_o comfortable_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o shall_v the_o moon_n persecure_v they_o with_o the_o terrible_a look_n of_o a_o bloody_a face_n because_o they_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n verse_n 13._o and_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n fall_v unto_o the_o earth_n as_o a_o figtree_n cast_v her_o green_a fig_n when_o it_o be_v shake_v of_o a_o mighty_a wind_n the_o judgement_n still_o increase_v &_o terror_n thereof_o enemy_n wherein_o we_o may_v see_v how_o all_o creature_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n offer_v their_o service_n to_o the_o creator_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o just_a vengeance_n upon_o the_o wicked_a every_o one_o of_o they_o sight_n in_o their_o course_n against_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o earth_n temble_v under_o they_o and_o reel_v to_o and_o fro_o as_o unable_a any_o long_o to_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o their_o iniquity_n and_o shall_v not_o rest_v till_o at_o length_n she_o open_v her_o mouth_n and_o swallow_v they_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n the_o star_n shall_v refuse_v to_o comfort_v they_o with_o their_o light_n thus_o at_o one_o time_n shall_v they_o find_v the_o creator_n and_o all_o his_o creature_n against_o they_o it_o be_v true_a that_o even_o now_o the_o wicked_a be_v under_o not_o wrath_n yet_o think_v they_o their_o estate_n good_a enough_o for_o they_o love_v the_o creature_n more_o than_o the_o creator_n so_o long_o as_o they_o enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o creature_n &_o feel_v not_o the_o indignation_n of_o the_o creator_n as_o short_o they_o will_v do_v in_o their_o misery_n they_o blosse_n themselves_o 1._o but_o in_o the_o end_n when_o all_o creature_n shall_v forsake_v they_o and_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n of_o they_o the_o world_n shall_v come_v in_o anger_n to_o pursue_v they_o yea_o and_o their_o own_o conscience_n shall_v also_o witness_v against_o they_o then_o shall_v their_o unhappy_a estate_n be_v discover_v to_o themselves_o and_o they_o shall_v cry_v as_o after_o follow_v rock_n and_o mountain_n fall_v upon_o we_o 73._o and_o cover_v us._n and_o this_o shall_v serve_v for_o a_o warn_n to_o we_o since_o the_o comfort_n of_o all_o creature_n will_v fail_v we_o creator_n yea_o thy_o own_o heart_n and_o flesh_n will_v fail_v thou_o let_v we_o seek_v the_o lord_n in_o time_n then_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a of_o david_n his_o comfort_n god_n the_o portion_n of_o my_o soul_n will_v never_o fail_v i_o set_a our_o heart_n upon_o that_o which_o be_v permanent_a but_o let_v we_o not_o rest_v in_o thing_n vanish_v who_o will_v dwell_v willing_o in_o a_o ruinous_a habitation_n si_fw-mi in_o mortal_a habitaculo_fw-la tuo_fw-la parietes_fw-la vetustate_fw-la nutarent_fw-la tecta_fw-la desuper_fw-la tremerent_fw-la domus_fw-la iam_fw-la fagitata_fw-la aedificiis_fw-la
lord_n but_o consider_v the_o end_n let_v all_o flesh_n look_v into_o this_o mirror_n and_o in_o time_n learn_v to_o embrace_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o you_o king_n be_v learned_a 12_o you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n and_o rejoice_v in_o tremble_v kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o you_o perish_v in_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n shall_v sudden_o burn_v bless_a be_v all_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o verse_n 16._o and_o say_v to_o the_o mountames_n and_o rock_n fall_v on_o we_o and_o hide_v we_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n two_o thing_n here_o we_o have_v first_o to_o who_o do_v creature_n the_o reprobate_n run_v in_o this_o desperate_a estate_n next_o what_o do_v they_o crave_v they_o run_v to_o the_o creature_n rock_n and_o mountain_n but_o have_v they_o ear_n to_o hear_v or_o can_v they_o protect_v when_o the_o lord_n pursue_v this_o be_v their_o blindness_n they_o love_v the_o creature_n more_o than_o the_o creator_n in_o their_o necessity_n they_o seek_v comfort_n in_o the_o creature_n but_o can_v find_v none_o a_o just_a recompense_n of_o their_o error_n but_o why_o do_v they_o not_o cry_v to_o the_o lord_n sure_o creator_n because_o they_o dare_v not_o they_o see_v nothing_o in_o he_o but_o wrath_n which_o their_o own_o conscience_n tell_v they_o they_o have_v most_o just_o deserve_v they_o find_v within_o themselves_o a_o condemnatorie_a sentence_n which_o they_o know_v can_v be_v recall_v let_v we_o in_o time_n seek_v mercy_n so_o long_o as_o it_o may_v be_v find_v the_o day_n before_o the_o trumpet_n blow_n mercy_n will_v be_v preach_v unto_o man_n but_o they_o who_o receive_v it_o not_o yet_o then_o shall_v never_o find_v it_o afterward_o by_o their_o folly_n let_v we_o learn_v wisdom_n the_o only_a rock_n of_o our_o refuge_n be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n if_o we_o run_v to_o he_o in_o time_n he_o shall_v hide_v we_o and_o save_v we_o from_o that_o fearful_a wrath_n which_o be_v to_o come_v the_o roman_a doctor_n upon_o this_o place_n build_v creature_n up_o as_o they_o think_v a_o sure_a ground_n for_o their_o invocation_n of_o creature_n they_o say_v to_o the_o mountain_n that_o be_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o the_o rock_n that_o be_v to_o the_o confirm_a angel_n hide_v we_o from_o the_o lamb_n and_o hitherto_o they_o abuse_v that_o place_n of_o the_o psalmist_n i_o apoc._n lift_v my_o eye_n to_o the_o mountain_n from_o whence_o come_v 1._o my_o help_n that_o be_v to_o the_o saint_n what_o a_o gross_a ignorance_n be_v this_o will_v saint_n and_o angel_n go_v between_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o wicked_a when_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v shall_v they_o not_o rather_o assist_v the_o lord_n in_o judge_v they_o know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o saint_n 2._o shall_v judge_v the_o world_n or_o what_o do_v they_o mean_v to_o propose_v that_o unto_o they_o for_o imitation_n which_o be_v here_o condemn_v in_o the_o wicked_a as_o utter_v by_o they_o in_o their_o desperation_n these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v the_o sundry_a foundation_n whereupon_o stand_v the_o pillar_n of_o papistry_n a_o twofold_a error_n in_o they_o be_v here_o manifest_a they_o lay_v another_o 12._o foundation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v jesus_n christ._n and_o again_o pretend_v of_o christ_n what_o they_o will_v sure_o it_o be_v they_o build_v not_o upon_o he_o gold_n and_o silver_n but_o stubble_n and_o hay_n which_o will_v not_o abide_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o fire_n but_o now_o what_o crave_v they_o that_o the_o rock_n and_o lord_n mountain_n will_v fall_v upon_o they_o and_o hide_v they_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n o_o desperate_a folly_n can_v mountain_n hide_v thou_o from_o the_o lord_n be_v they_o not_o a_o part_n of_o that_o crystal_n globe_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o be_v transparent_a to_o the_o lord_n they_o live_v all_o their_o day_n out_o of_o god_n presence_n not_o that_o his_o eye_n do_v not_o behold_v they_o and_o mark_v they_o in_o all_o their_o way_n but_o their_o eye_n look_v not_o up_o to_o he_o and_o therefore_o now_o may_v they_o not_o abide_v his_o presence_n let_v we_o it_o leave_v they_o and_o learn_v at_o david_n when_o he_o have_v consider_v with_o himself_o that_o there_o be_v no_o fly_v from_o the_o lord_n whither_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o spirit_n 7._o or_o whither_o shall_v i_o flee_v from_o thy_o presence_n he_o betake_v he_o to_o this_o resolution_n i_o set_v the_o lord_n always_o 8._o before_o i_o he_o be_v at_o my_o right_a hand_n therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o slide_v sith_o we_o can_v flee_v from_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o flee_v to_o he_o there_o be_v no_o defence_n against_o his_o unsupportable_a wrath_n but_o to_o hide_v we_o under_o the_o mantle_n of_o his_o mercy_n there_o be_v two_o fear_n which_o trouble_v two_o sort_n man_n of_o man_n the_o fear_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n which_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n the_o godly_a in_o come_v their_o life_n fear_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o sin_n they_o fight_v continual_o against_o it_o they_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o be_v quit_v of_o it_o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o body_n of_o death_n 24._o and_o therefore_o be_v it_o that_o have_v overcome_v sin_n they_o fear_v not_o death_n when_o it_o come_v more_o than_o a_o serpent_n that_o want_v a_o sting_n the_o wicked_a on_o the_o contrary_a in_o their_o life_n fear_v nothing_o but_o death_n they_o fly_v it_o as_o the_o centre_n of_o their_o sorrow_n 23._o because_o they_o can_v eschew_v it_o all_o their_o death_n care_n be_v to_o prolong_v it_o as_o for_o sin_n they_o fear_v it_o not_o it_o be_v a_o pastime_n to_o a_o fool_n to_o do_v wicked_o but_o when_o their_o terme-day_n come_v and_o conscience_n wake_v against_o they_o to_o pursue_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n and_o let_v they_o see_v wrath_n due_a to_o their_o sin_n then_o seek_v they_o death_n as_o a_o remedy_n 13._o of_o their_o sorrow_n but_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o yea_o they_o will_v undergo_v the_o most_o painful_a death_n even_o to_o be_v press_v quick_a to_o the_o death_n by_o the_o weight_n of_o mountain_n that_o they_o may_v be_v free_v of_o the_o heavy_a burden_n of_o their_o sin_n verse_n 17._o for_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o who_o can_v stand_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v call_v a_o great_a day_n of_o why_o wrath_n first_o because_o all_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n shall_v be_v judge_v in_o that_o day_n none_o except_v next_o because_o all_o the_o vial_n of_o god_n wrath_n shall_v then_o be_v pour_v upon_o they_o a_o universal_a deluge_n of_o all_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n shall_v then_o overflow_v they_o the_o wicked_a put_v the_o evil_a day_n far_o from_o they_o the_o unfaithful_a 3._o servant_n think_v his_o master_n will_v not_o come_v mocker_n will_v say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n 3_o as_o the_o kinsman_n of_o lot_n regard_v not_o his_o predication_n vain_o of_o sodom_n destruction_n ab_fw-la uno_fw-la dicebatur_fw-la à_fw-la multis_fw-la ridebatur_fw-la it_o be_v speak_v by_o one_o and_o scorn_v by_o many_o but_o they_o feel_v the_o force_n and_o fury_n of_o that_o scorch_a fire_n short_o after_o so_o no_o less_o assure_o shall_v all_o the_o wicked_a who_o repent_v not_o feel_v the_o weight_n of_o that_o terrible_a wrath_n both_o on_o their_o soulos_fw-la and_o body_n they_o shall_v confess_v at_o length_n the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v that_o day_n which_o we_o despise_v that_o day_n which_o we_o scorn_v that_o day_n which_o we_o think_v will_v never_o be_v that_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v now_o come_v two_o thing_n perturb_v and_o confound_v the_o wicked_a day_n the_o one_o be_v without_o they_o the_o terrible_a presence_n of_o the_o judge_n or_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n he_o that_o be_v a_o lamb_n to_o his_o own_o look_v to_o the_o wicked_a judge_n like_o a_o devour_a lyon_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n be_v the_o name_n of_o a_o lamb_n here_o attribute_v to_o the_o judge_n for_o sure_a it_o be_v that_o judgement_n just_o inflict_v will_v not_o torment_v the_o wicked_a so_o much_o as_o mercy_n wilful_o despise_v terrible_a will_v it_o be_v to_o they_o when_o they_o look_v to_o the_o lamb_n who_o have_v give_v mercy_n to_o so_o many_o and_o so_o many_o time_n offer_v mercy_n to_o themselves_o and_o now_o see_v he_o refuse_v all_o mercy_n to_o they_o because_o they_o despise_v it_o just_o shall_v the_o meek_a face_n of_o
the_o lamb_n be_v turn_v to_o they_o in_o the_o terrible_a face_n of_o a_o lion_n and_o as_o i_o say_v mercy_n despise_v shall_v torment_v they_o more_o than_o judgement_n ☜_o inflict_v the_o other_o thing_n that_o perturbe_v the_o wicked_a be_v conscience_n within_o they_o a_o sensible_a infirmity_n in_o themselves_o through_o the_o guilty_a conscience_n that_o make_v they_o unable_a to_o stand_v before_o the_o lord_n who_o can_v stand_v the_o wicked_a be_v as_o the_o chaff_n which_o the_o wind_n drive_v 5._o away_o they_o shall_v not_o stand_v in_o judgement_n let_v we_o beware_v of_o both_o these_o see_v we_o despise_v not_o mercy_n offer_v let_v we_o careful_o purge_v our_o conscience_n who_o shall_v ascend_v into_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o 4._o shall_v stand_v in_o his_o holy_a place_n he_o that_o have_v innocent_a hand_n and_o a_o pure_a heart_n so_o shall_v that_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n fearful_a to_o the_o wicked_a be_v unto_o we_o a_o joyful_a day_n of_o redemption_n and_o of_o sweet_a refreshment_n the_o lord_n grant_v we_o may_v so_o find_v it_o chap._n vii_o verse_n 1._o and_o after_o that_o i_o see_v four_o angel_n stand_v on_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n hold_v the_o four_o wind_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o the_o wind_n shall_v not_o blow_v on_o earth_n nor_o sea_n nor_o any_o tree_n this_o chapter_n be_v a_o pendicle_n of_o the_o precedent_n and_o appertain_v six_o to_o the_o first_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n which_o we_o call_v general_n in_o it_o per_fw-la anabasin_n we_o have_v a_o large_a explication_n of_o the_o five_o and_o six_o seal_n seal_n with_o a_o notable_a consolation_n for_o the_o godly_a present_o subjoin_v after_o the_o prediction_n of_o that_o most_o fearful_a desperate_a and_o comfortless_a end_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o short_o will_v come_v upon_o they_o for_o there_o we_o hear_v all_o manner_n of_o reprobate_a man_n sorrowful_o lament_v and_o cry_v that_o mountain_n may_v cover_v they_o here_o we_o be_v all_o tell_v that_o the_o godly_a shall_v not_o be_v involue_v with_o they_o in_o their_o desperate_a estate_n the_o lord_n by_o his_o own_o seal_n separate_v they_o from_o the_o wicked_a and_o foreshow_v that_o happy_a estate_n wherein_o they_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o the_o chapter_n have_v two_o part_n the_o first_o enlarge_n chapter_n that_o which_o have_v be_v brief_o set_v down_o in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o seal_n for_o in_o the_o five_o seal_n saint_n cry_v for_o a_o seal_v dissolution_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o final_a judgement_n to_o avenge_v their_o blood_n on_o they_o who_o dwell_v on_o earth_n there_o they_o be_v desire_v to_o rest_n until_o their_o fellow-servant_n be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o six_o seal_n that_o dissolution_n of_o the_o world_n and_o judgement_n on_o the_o wicked_a crave_v by_o saint_n and_o promise_v by_o the_o lord_n be_v represent_v to_o s._n john_n both_o these_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o seven_o chapter_n be_v more_o clear_o expound_v for_o first_o s._n john_n see_v four_o angel_n stand_v at_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n ready_a to_o overturn_v the_o world_n and_o to_o fold_v it_o up_o like_o a_o old_a vesture_n as_o be_v figure_v in_o the_o six_o seal_n and_o this_o we_o have_v ver_fw-la 1._o next_o these_o angel_n be_v inhibit_v and_o forbid_v to_o destroy_v the_o world_n until_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v first_o seal_v and_o secure_v as_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o five_o seal_n and_o this_o we_o have_v seal_n ver_fw-la 2._o 3._o together_o with_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o be_v seal_v till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o thirteen_o verse_n from_o that_o to_o the_o end_n be_v describe_v the_o happy_a condition_n of_o saint_n set_v down_o in_o plain_a term_n and_o direct_o opposite_a to_o that_o woeful_a condition_n of_o reprobate_n mention_v in_o the_o six_o seal_n so_o this_o from_o ver_fw-la 15._o to_o the_o end_n make_v up_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n the_o first_o part_n let_v we_o see_v how_o the_o world_n be_v conserve_v till_o saint_n be_v fulfil_v and_o seal_v the_o other_o part_n show_v we_o their_o joyful_a and_o happy_a estate_n wherein_o it_o be_v very_o comfortable_a to_o observe_v the_o saint_n opposition_n which_o be_v make_v between_o the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o the_o wicked_a in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o chapter_n and_o happy_a estate_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o seven_o they_o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o moon_n with_o a_o bloody_a face_n look_v upon_o they_o and_o all_o creature_n concur_v to_o be_v avenge_v of_o they_o here_o the_o saint_n come_v safe_a through_o all_o these_o tribulation_n and_o make_v their_o robe_n white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n there_o the_o sun_n wax_v black_a and_o withdraw_v his_o light_n from_o the_o wicked_a here_o saint_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o the_o lamb_n govern_v they_o ver_fw-la 16._o 17._o and_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 23._o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v their_o light_n again_o there_o the_o wicked_a fly_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o may_v not_o abide_v it_o but_o here_o saint_n be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 15._o there_o the_o wicked_a cry_n that_o mountain_n may_v hide_v they_o from_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n but_o here_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n dwell_v among_o his_o saint_n and_o they_o serve_v he_o for_o ever_o ver_fw-la 15._o these_o thing_n thus_o compare_v together_o may_v let_v six_o the_o judicious_a reader_n see_v how_o this_o chapter_n be_v a_o proper_a pendicle_n of_o the_o six_o explain_v at_o length_n some_o thing_n short_o and_o obscure_o set_v down_o in_o the_o former_a so_o that_o in_o these_o two_o chapter_n we_o have_v the_o first_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n which_o i_o call_v general_a absolve_v and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o eight_o chapter_n we_o be_v to_o look_v for_o a_o second_o prophecy_n which_o continue_v to_o the_o twelve_o and_o i_o see_v four_o angel_n this_o verse_n as_o i_o have_v signify_v say_v let_v we_o see_v how_o the_o angel_n stand_v at_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v ready_a to_o overturn_v the_o world_n and_o to_o fold_v it_o up_o like_o a_o old_a vesture_n if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o stay_v they_o that_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v four_o be_v a_o certain_a number_n for_o a_o uncertain_a yet_o import_v it_o that_o they_o be_v sufficient_a for_o one_o at_o every_o corner_n of_o a_o sheet_n or_o vesture_n as_o the_o psalmist_n 26._o term_v this_o universe_n be_v able_a enough_o to_o fold_v it_o up_o what_o these_o angel_n be_v whether_o good_a or_o evil_n angel_n be_v dispute_v among_o the_o divine_n but_o without_o a_o cause_n for_o sometime_o by_o good_a angel_n the_o lord_n punish_v evil_a man_n as_o be_v do_v to_o the_o egyptian_n sodomite_n and_o assyrian_n sometime_o by_o evil_a angel_n he_o exercise_v good_a man_n so_o s._n paul_n be_v buffet_v with_o a_o angel_n of_o satan_n for_o marvelous_a be_v the_o lord_n in_o work_v with_o his_o saint_n satan_n in_o his_o fight_n against_o they_o fight_v for_o they_o and_o destroy_v himself_o into_o they_o but_o that_o these_o be_v good_a angel_n appear_v by_o text._n the_o speech_n which_o christ_n use_v unto_o they_o ver_fw-la 2._o hurt_v not_o the_o earth_n till_o we_o have_v seal_v the_o servant_n of_o our_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n he_o speak_v to_o angel_n he_o speak_v of_o saint_n redeem_v and_o involu_v they_o both_o in_o the_o fellowship_n of_o one_o god_n with_o himself_o beside_o this_o the_o execution_n of_o that_o last_o judgement_n be_v common_o ascribe_v to_o the_o holy_a angel_n the_o lord_n shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n 16._o and_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n and_o again_o when_o the_o son_n of_o 32._o man_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o glory_n the_o holy_a angel_n shall_v also_o come_v with_o he_o then_o shall_v the_o sheep_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o goat_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v do_v by_o angel_n be_v evident_a in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o harvest_n the_o 39_o harvest_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o reaper_n be_v the_o angel_n and_o to_o this_o same_o purpose_n angel_n here_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o executor_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n to_o overturn_v the_o world_n hold_v the_o four_o wind_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o leave_v allegorical_o here_o those_o allegorical_a interpretation_n whereby_o this_o be_v expound_v to_o be_v the_o restraint_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o breathe_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n
song_n they_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o i_o say_v by_o themselves_o beautiful_a and_o glorious_a but_o so_o much_o the_o more_o beautiful_a as_o they_o be_v many_o and_o diverse_a agree_v all_o in_o one_o unity_n as_o in_o a_o musical_a instrument_n the_o sound_n be_v sweet_a if_o the_o string_n be_v many_o yet_o concordant_a nam_fw-la s●…nus_fw-la s●…avissimus_fw-la 148._o ●…it_fw-la ex_fw-la diversis_fw-la non_fw-la adversis_fw-la sonis_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o sancti_fw-la habebunt_fw-la tune_n differentias_fw-la svas_fw-la consonantes_fw-la non_fw-la dissonantes_fw-la so_o be_v it_o with_o saint_n howsoever_o different_a in_o regard_n of_o many_o sort_n of_o people_n whereof_o they_o consist_v yet_o agree_v they_o all_o in_o one_o sweet_a consonance_n and_o harmony_n among_o themselves_o salvation_n in_o this_o one_o word_n of_o salvation_n they_o lord_n comprise_v the_o whole_a benefit_n of_o our_o redemption_n the_o greatness_n of_o this_o salvation_n will_v best_o be_v know_v by_o look_v to_o that_o threefold_a condemnation_n from_o which_o god_n have_v deliver_v we_o and_o whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v rom._n 8._o ver_fw-la 1._o all_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o salvation_n they_o ascribe_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o none_o other_o they_o look_v neither_o to_o angel_n nor_o man_n but_o give_v the_o glory_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n of_o the_o lamb._n the_o discordance_n saint_n of_o popish_a hymn_n from_o this_o song_n of_o saint_n show_v they_o to_o be_v antichristian_a for_o in_o all_o their_o song_n &_o prayer_n there_o sound_v a_o uncouth_a voice_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n yea_o in_o their_o mass-book_n they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o heaven_n by_o another_o blood_n than_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n their_o distinction_n of_o principal_o and_o secondary_o will_v not_o free_v they_o of_o blasphemy_n our_o salvation_n say_v they_o principal_o be_v from_o god_n and_o the_o lamb_n but_o secondary_o it_o must_v be_v help_v by_o our_o own_o merit_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o other_o no_o such_o word_n have_v we_o in_o this_o heavenly_a song_n if_o they_o will_v sing_v this_o song_n with_o we_o and_o say_v amen_o to_o it_o as_o angel_n do_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n controversy_n between_o christian_n catholic_n and_o they_o that_o will_v be_v call_v catholic_n roman_a be_v the_o more_o easy_o end_v but_o heresy_n must_v be_v that_o such_o as_o 19_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v try_v verse_n 11._o and_o all_o the_o angel_n stand_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n and_o about_o the_o elder_n and_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n and_o they_o fall_v before_o the_o throne_n on_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n the_o former_a thanksgiving_n of_o saint_n be_v here_o angel_n second_v by_o angel_n not_o only_a say_n amen_o and_o so_o approve_v that_o which_o redeem_v saint_n have_v say_v before_o but_o also_o v._n 12._o subjoine_v to_o this_o same_o purpose_n a_o new_a thanksgiving_a of_o their_o own_o where_o first_o we_o have_v to_o observe_v the_o order_n of_o the_o heaven_n heavenly_a court_n first_o we_o have_v the_o throne_n upon_o which_o sit_v the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o sevenfold_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o both_o o_o what_o a_o comfort_n be_v it_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n redeem_v the_o man_n jesus_n redeemer_n of_o saint_n sit_v on_o the_o throne_n with_o the_o father_n next_o to_o the_o throne_n be_v the_o sour_a live_a creature_n represent_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a order_n of_o angel_n as_o we_o have_v show_v chap._n 4._o then_o about_o they_o stand_v the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o saint_n redeem_v and_o then_o in_o a_o circle_n about_o they_o stand_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o other_o angel_n what_o great_a comfort_n we_o have_v of_o this_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n stand_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n in_o the_o nine_o verse_n it_o have_v be_v say_v that_o redeem_v saint_n stand_v before_o the_o throne_n now_o angel_n be_v also_o say_v to_o fall_v stand_v about_o the_o throne_n they_o stand_v &_o never_o fall_v grace_n preserve_v they_o we_o fall_v and_o be_v in_o the_o transgression_n but_o grace_n raise_v we_o up_o again_o and_o make_v we_o now_o to_o stand_v before_o the_o throne_n o_o what_o stand_v a_o mercy_n have_v the_o lord_n show_v upon_o we_o if_o we_o will_v know_v it_o let_v we_o look_v to_o the_o reprobate_a angel_n of_o they_o so_o say_v s._n jude_n the_o angel_n who_o 6._o keep_v not_o their_o first_o estate_n but_o leave_v their_o own_o habitation_n he_o have_v reserve_v in_o everlasting_a chain_n under_o darkness_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n to_o this_o same_o purpose_n also_o say_v saint_n peter_n god_n spare_v 4._o not_o the_o angel_n that_o have_v sin_v but_o cast_v they_o down_o into_o hell_n and_o deliver_v they_o into_o chain_n of_o darkness_n to_o be_v keep_v unto_o damnation_n yet_o man_n that_o sin_v the_o lord_n have_v spare_v he_o fall_v from_o his_o first_o estate_n as_o the_o angel_n do_v yet_o do_v not_o the_o lord_n cast_v he_o down_o to_o hell_n nor_o deliver_v he_o to_o chain_n of_o darkness_n as_o he_o do_v they_o but_o merciful_o have_v raise_v he_o up_o again_o and_o make_v he_o to_o sit_v in_o the_o heavenly_a 6._o place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o now_o he_o stand_v before_o the_o throne_n in_o the_o company_n of_o these_o bless_a and_o elect_a angel_n that_o stand_v and_o neverfall_v let_v we_o meditate_v upon_o this_o mercy_n which_o our_o narrow_a heart_n can_v never_o sufficient_o understand_v oh_o that_o we_o be_v as_o we_o shall_v thankful_a for_o it_o and_o they_o fall_v on_o their_o face_n before_o the_o angel_n worship_n be_v say_v to_o cover_v their_o face_n with_o wing_n now_o again_o they_o fall_v on_o their_o face_n note_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o their_o humble_a reverence_n in_o praise_v god_n and_o recommend_v the_o reverence_n of_o bodily_a humiliation_n to_o we_o in_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n it_o be_v write_v of_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n that_o his_o knee_n prayer_n with_o frequent_a kneel_v and_o his_o forehead_n with_o often_o bow_v it_o to_o the_o ground_n in_o the_o time_n of_o prayer_n 5._o obduruisse_fw-la callo_fw-la be_v become_v so_o hard_o ut_fw-la nihil_fw-la ferè_fw-la à_fw-la cameli_fw-la pedibus_fw-la si_fw-la duritiem_fw-la spectes_fw-la discreparent_fw-la that_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o hardness_n from_o the_o knee_n or_o foot_n of_o a_o camel_n but_o now_o man_n be_v become_v so_o delicate_a that_o they_o think_v it_o reverence_n enough_o to_o discover_v the_o head_n to_o fall_v on_o their_o face_n they_o will_v not_o yea_o scarce_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o the_o ground_n to_o honour_v the_o lord_n now_o when_o they_o fall_v on_o their_o face_n it_o be_v say_v they_o only_o worship_v god_n in_o all_o this_o court_n of_o heaven_n there_o be_v no_o worship_v of_o angel_n patriarch_n or_o apostle_n all_o the_o sound_n of_o their_o voice_n be_v for_o to_o give_v the_o lord_n the_o glory_n of_o salvation_n and_o all_o the_o gesture_n they_o use_v be_v to_o give_v worship_n to_o the_o lord_n only_o and_o none_o other_o verse_n 12._o say_v amen_o praise_v and_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n and_o thanks_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o might_n be_v to_o our_o god_n for_o evermore_o amen_n the_o former_a song_n of_o saint_n be_v now_o approve_a saint_n by_o angel_n and_o they_o say_v amen_o unto_o it_o they_o will_v give_v no_o part_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o salvation_n to_o any_o man_n they_o will_v take_v none_o of_o it_o to_o themselves_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n consist_v of_o man_n and_o angel_n we_o have_v in_o the_o precede_a confession_n papist_n glory_v in_o their_o multitude_n saint_n and_o call_v this_o confession_n heretical_a which_o reserve_v the_o glory_n of_o salvation_n to_o god_n only_o but_o there_o be_v more_o with_o we_o then_o with_o they_o all_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n say_v amen_o unto_o it_o let_v we_o keep_v the_o tenor_n of_o the_o heavenly_a song_n choose_v rather_o to_o be_v false_o name_v heretic_n with_o saint_n and_o angel_n then_o false_o name_v catholic_n with_o papist_n who_o can_v never_o praise_v the_o lord_n free_o and_o full_o but_o reserve_v a_o part_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o the_o creature_n concern_v the_o use_n of_o the_o particle_n amen_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o praise_n and_o glory_n it_o content_v they_o not_o by_o say_v he_o amen_o to_o approve_v the_o song_n of_o saint_n but_o they_o will_v also_o praise_v god_n by_o themselves_o a_o warning_n to_o many_o of_o our_o cold_a professor_n who_o will_v sit_v in_o the_o church_n to_o hear_v god_n praise_v but_o not_o
virtue_n may_v be_v learn_v from_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n jesus_n when_o god_n slay_v all_o the_o firstborn_a in_o every_o house_n of_o egypt_n by_o his_o destroy_a angel_n such_o house_n as_o have_v the_o post_n of_o their_o door_n sprinkle_v with_o blood_n be_v spare_v the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v a_o cover_n to_o his_o saint_n to_o save_v they_o from_o that_o virtue_n wrath_n wherein_o the_o wicked_a shall_v perish_v his_o pacify_v virtue_n be_v touch_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v justify_v 5._o by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n and_o again_o the_o 24._o blood_n of_o christ_n cry_v for_o better_a thing_n than_o the_o blood_n of_o abel_n but_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n unto_o ourselves_o unless_o we_o feel_v his_o purge_a virtue_n who_o natural_o be_v unclean_a the_o comfort_n of_o his_o protect_a and_o pacify_v virtue_n can_v be_v we_o verse_n 15._o therefore_o be_v they_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o day_n and_o night_n in_o his_o temple_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n will_v dwell_v among_o they_o the_o s●…ignior_n have_v declare_v to_o saint_n john_n describe_v what_o these_o be_v who_o he_o see_v clothe_v in_o white_a garment_n with_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n to_o wit_n redeem_v good_a saint_n not_o militant_a but_o have_v end_v their_o warrefare_n and_o get_v the_o victory_n not_o under_o tribulation_n but_o come_v out_o of_o tribulation_n he_o now_o proceed_v evil_a and_o short_o describe_v their_o felicitic_n and_o happy_a estate_n wherein_o now_o they_o be_v and_o that_o in_o two_o point_n first_o in_o the_o affluence_n &_o abundance_n which_o they_o have_v of_o all_o good_a next_o in_o their_o freedom_n and_o exemption_n from_o all_o evil_a in_o this_o verse_n three_o thing_n be_v set_v down_o concern_v glorify_v they_o first_o where_o be_v they_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n next_o what_o do_v they_o there_o they_o serve_v he_o day_n and_o night_n three_o what_o get_v they_o for_o that_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n will_v dwell_v among_o they_o by_o this_o phrase_n the_o unspeakable_a joy_n communicate_v to_o they_o by_o the_o lord_n be_v figure_v this_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o any_o estate_n of_o the_o earth_n church_n militant_a here_o on_o earth_n neither_o of_o jew_n convert_v nor_o other_o christian_n deliver_v from_o the_o tyrannic_n of_o antichrist_n as_o some_o interpreter_n will_v have_v it_o these_o word_n be_v not_o competent_a to_o saint_n militant_a they_o hunger_n no_o more_o they_o thirst_v no_o more_o &_o god_n shall_v wipe_v away_o allteare_n from_o their_o eye_n in_o this_o valley_n of_o tear_n when_o shall_v we_o when_o shall_v we_o be_v without_o tear_n bless_a be_v they_o who_o hunger_n &_o 6._o thirst_n now_o for_o righteousness_n they_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v now_o we_o hunger_n &_o be_v bless_v there_o they_o hunger_n no_o more_o but_o be_v full_o satisfy_v the_o millenaries_n of_o old_a have_v a_o opinion_n somewhat_o like_o this_o that_o saint_n after_o christ_n his_o come_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n shall_v possess_v the_o earth_n by_o themselves_o without_o all_o tribulation_n but_o neither_o before_o his_o come_n nor_o after_o be_v any_o such_o quiet_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n warrant_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o this_o be_v relative_a to_o the_o word_n immediate_o professor_n precede_v they_o have_v make_v their_o robe_n white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n therefore_o be_v they_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o fellowship_n with_o god_n but_o by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n every_o man_n in_o this_o presumptuous_a age_n say_v that_o he_o have_v jesus_n but_o jesus_n be_v a_o physician_n of_o great_a value_n if_o thou_o have_v he_o he_o will_v cleanse_v thou_o from_o the_o filthy_a leprosy_n of_o thy_o sin_n be_v thou_o not_o cleanse_v then_o have_v thou_o not_o jesus_n and_o without_o he_o thou_o can_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o comfortable_a presence_n of_o god_n the_o last_o chapter_n be_v conclude_v with_o the_o tragical_a end_n and_o fearful_a end_n of_o the_o wicked_a the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n wrath_n be_v come_v &_o who_o can_v stand_v say_v they_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o stand_v in_o judgement_n but_o shall_v be_v banish_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o glory_n but_o here_o we_o 1_o see_v how_o the_o godlystand_v before_o the_o throne_n &_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n as_o their_o course_n in_o their_o life_n be_v contrary_a to_o other_o so_o shall_v their_o end_n be_v god_n give_v we_o grace_n to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o best_a for_o we_o see_v before_o we_o the_o way_n wherein_o they_o walk_v lord_n and_o the_o order_n which_o they_o observe_v who_o now_o be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n first_o they_o be_v wash_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o they_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n if_o we_o will_v come_v where_o they_o be_v let_v we_o keep_v the_o course_n wherein_o they_o walk_v before_o joseph_n be_v present_v unto_o pharaoh_n his_o head_n 14._o be_v shave_v his_o nail_n be_v pare_v his_o garment_n change_v and_o must_v not_o we_o cut_v away_o from_o we_o our_o superfluity_n before_o we_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o presence_n 12._o of_o god_n esther_n be_v six_o month_n purify_v with_o oil_n of_o myrrh_n and_o other_o six_o month_n with_o sweet_a odour_n before_o she_o be_v marry_v with_o ahasuerus_n and_o shall_v we_o think_v to_o be_v where_o the_o lord_n be_v without_o a_o similitude_n with_o he_o or_o what_o similitude_n can_v we_o have_v with_o that_o holy_a one_o except_o that_o first_o we_o be_v wash_v and_o cleanse_v from_o our_o natural_a uncleanenes_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n there_o be_v a_o threefold_a presence_n god_n of_o god_n first_o a_o presence_n of_o his_o goodness_n next_o a_o presence_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o three_o a_o presence_n of_o his_o glory_n whereof_o here_o be_v speak_v the_o presence_n of_o his_o goodness_n he_o grant_v unto_o man_n all_o man_n in_o the_o utter_a court_n of_o his_o palace_n for_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o shine_v and_o the_o rain_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o just_a and_o the_o unjust_a who_o may_v not_o see_v the_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o manifold_a good_a creature_n 45._o which_o he_o have_v create_v the_o earth_n be_v full_a 20._o of_o his_o goodness_n yea_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n that_o be_v his_o eternal_a power_n and_o godhead_n be_v see_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o light_n of_o this_o presence_n have_v learn_v natural_a man_n many_o thing_n concern_v god_n by_o it_o the_o platonies_n saw_n deum_fw-la omne_fw-la ista_fw-la fecisse_fw-la 6._o &_o à_fw-fr null●…_n fieri_fw-la potuisse_fw-la that_o god_n have_v make_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o can_v not_o be_v make_v of_o any_o other_o himself_o yea_o they_o ascend_v far_o high_a to_o understand_v much_o more_o concern_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n as_o more_o at_o large_a be_v set_v down_o in_o that_o same_o place_n by_o saint_n augustine_n and_o yet_o all_o this_o knowledge_n get_v in_o the_o court_n or_o school_v of_o the_o creature_n do_v but_o make_v they_o to_o be_v without_o excuse_n because_o that_o when_o they_o ●…1_n know_v god_n they_o glorify_v he_o not_o as_o god_n the_o presence_n of_o his_o grace_n he_o give_v to_o his_o saint_n saint_n special_o in_o their_o holy_a assembly_n there_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n and_o operation_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n he_o show_v himself_o a_o gracious_a merciful_a and_o reconcile_v god_n to_o they_o in_o christ_n they_o seek_v he_o and_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o he_o speak_v peace_n unto_o they_o and_o secret_o 9_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n witness_n unto_o their_o heart_n that_o he_o be_v their_o father_n that_o be_v his_o little_a sanctuary_n asse●…blies_n i_o mean_v his_o church_n narrow_a by_o much_o than_o the_o utter_a great_a court_n as_o i_o have_v call_v it_o in_o that_o wherein_o all_o man_n see_v his_o goodness_n in_o this_o he_o be_v familiar_a with_o his_o saint_n and_o they_o only_o see_v and_o feel_v his_o grace_n of_o this_o presence_n speak_v david_n for_o in_o his_o banishment_n he_o long_v for_o it_o my_o soul_n thirst_v for_o 4._o god_n even_o for_o the_o live_a god_n when_o shall_v i_o come_v and_o appear_v before_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o what_o presence_n he_o mean_v of_o he_o expound_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v go_v with_o the_o multitude_n and_o lead_v they_o into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o sing_v and_o praise_v for_o god_n in_o a_o special_a manner_n appear_v in_o
house_n for_o ever_o 25._o he_o have_v say_v immediate_o before_o he_o that_o commit_v ever_o sin_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n and_o then_o terrible_a be_v that_o which_o follow_v the_o servant_n abide_v not_o in_o the_o house_n for_o ever_o what_o then_o shall_v the_o lamb_n who_o be_v without_o sin_n be_v in_o the_o house_n himself_o alone_o shall_v no_o sinner_n come_v there_o shall_v he_o be_v a_o king_n and_o lord_n without_o subject_n cui_fw-la haerebit_fw-la caput_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la corpus_fw-la where_o shall_v the_o 41._o head_n be_v if_o it_o have_v not_o a_o body_n oh_o but_o mark_v what_o immediate_o he_o subjoin_v filius_fw-la autem_fw-la manebit_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la the_o son_n shall_v abide_v in_o the_o house_n for_o ever_o non_fw-la sine_fw-la causa_fw-la &_o terruit_fw-la &_o spem_fw-la dedit_fw-la it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n say_v s._n augustine_n that_o in_o one_o son_n sentence_n he_o have_v both_o terrify_v we_o and_o comfort_v we_o he_o have_v terrify_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o love_v sin_n he_o have_v comfort_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v ibid._n not_o despair_v for_o sin_n if_o you_o demand_v then_o where_o be_v our_o hope_n since_o we_o be_v sinner_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v the_o servant_n abide_v not_o in_o the_o house_n for_o ever_o for_o he_o be_v a_o servant_n that_o commit_v sin_n here_o be_v your_o hope_n and_o hearken_v unto_o it_o the_o son_n abide_v in_o the_o house_n for_o ever_o if_o we_o be_v but_o servant_n and_o not_o son_n we_o have_v cause_n of_o discouragement_n but_o here_o be_v our_o comfort_n we_o be_v servant_n but_o now_o be_v become_v son_n if_o the_o son_n make_v you_o 36._o free_a you_o shall_v be_v free_a indeed_o such_o servant_n be_v we_o now_o as_o be_v freeman_n also_o and_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n will_v dwell_v etc._n etc._n they_o this_o be_v the_o three_o and_o last_o part_n of_o this_o verse_n as_o they_o serve_v he_o so_o he_o most_o gracious_o recompense_v they_o note_v here_o by_o this_o speech_n that_o he_o dwell_v among_o they_o the_o phrase_n import_v the_o communication_n of_o all_o good_a for_o among_o man_n where_o king_n kingdom_n have_v their_o dwell_n there_o be_v the_o abundance_n of_o every_o good_a thing_n that_o can_v be_v have_v in_o the_o kingdom_n but_o much_o more_o be_v here_o signify_v yea_o infinite_o more_o ahasuerus_n one_o of_o the_o momentanean_a 5._o monarch_n of_o the_o earth_n make_v a_o feast_n to_o his_o prince_n of_o a_o hundred_o and_o seven_o and_o twenty_o province_n the_o feast_n last_v a_o hundred_o and_o four_o score_n glorious_a day_n and_o seven_o day_n again_o for_o the_o common_a people_n all_o this_o he_o do_v that_o he_o may_v show_v the_o riches_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o honour_n of_o his_o great_a majesty_n and_o his_o majesty_n short_o after_o turn_v into_o dust_n and_o ash_n why_o then_o do_v i_o bring_v he_o in_o to_o make_v a_o comparison_n no_o way_n what_o be_v the_o light_n of_o a_o halfpenny_n candle_n to_o the_o sun_n yet_o have_v i_o speak_v of_o he_o that_o if_o we_o can_v from_o small_a thing_n we_o may_v ascend_v to_o the_o consideration_n saint_n of_o great_a what_o a_o great_a feast_n must_v this_o be_v which_o the_o lord_n shall_v make_v in_o heaven_n to_o his_o saint_n he_o dwell_v among_o they_o he_o flit_v not_o he_o be_v their_o king_n for_o ever_o and_o they_o be_v not_o gather_v out_o of_o a_o hundred_o and_o seven_o twenty_o province_n but_o out_o of_o all_o nation_n tongue_n and_o language_n this_o feast_n be_v not_o for_o a_o hundred_o four_o score_n and_o seven_o day_n but_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o o_o happy_a habitation_n o_o dwelling_n full_a of_o delight_n the_o word_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n here_o use_v earth_n import_v all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o than_o we_o can_v conceive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o tent_n or_o tabernacle_n to_o spread_v over_o they_o to_o obumbrate_v they_o and_o protect_v they_o the_o like_a be_v promise_v in_o other_o place_n i_o will_v dwell_v among_o they_o and_o walk_v 16._o there_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n in_o this_o life_n the_o lord_n dwell_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o with_o they_o d●…rigendo_fw-la ad_fw-la finem_fw-la adipiscendum_fw-la carthus_n guide_v and_o direct_v they_o to_o the_o end_n whereunto_o he_o have_v ordain_v they_o but_o in_o heaven_n he_o dwell_v heaven_n with_o his_o saint_n conseruandoeos_n in_o fine_a adepto_fw-la conserve_n they_o in_o that_o end_n and_o happy_a estate_n whereunto_o his_o grace_n have_v bring_v they_o but_o as_o i_o say_v what_o great_a glory_n and_o joy_n saint_n have_v by_o the_o lord_n hsi_fw-fr dwelling_n among_o they_o can_v now_o be_v understand_v moses_n be_v but_o forty_o day_n with_o the_o lord_n on_o mount_n sinai_n and_o his_o face_n when_o he_o come_v down_o shine_v so_o bright_o that_o his_o people_n may_v not_o behold_v he_o how_o then_o shall_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n his_o lightsome_a countenance_n illuminate_v they_o with_o who_o he_o shall_v dwell_v for_o ever_o always_o the_o use_n of_o all_o be_v they_o serve_v he_o and_o themselves_o he_o dwell_v among_o they_o to_o satiate_v and_o replenish_v they_o with_o his_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n their_o service_n want_v not_o the_o own_o recompense_n yea_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o their_o service_n redound_v to_o themselves_o where_o we_o must_v observe_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n other_o master_n seek_v and_o entertain_v servant_n for_o some_o vantage_n to_o themselves_o for_o who_o will_v maintain_v servant_n but_o for_o their_o own_o ease_n and_o commodity_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o lord_n his_o servant_n can_v profit_v he_o nothing_o all_o the_o benefit_n redound_v to_o himself_o this_o david_n humble_o do_v acknowledge_v my_o goodness_n 1._o extend_v not_o to_o thou_o and_o again_o when_o he_o have_v offer_v liberal_o for_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n than_o say_v he_o who_o be_o i_o and_o what_o be_v my_o people_n 14_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o offer_v willing_o after_o this_o sort_n for_o all_o thing_n come_v of_o thou_o and_o of_o thy_o own_o hand_n have_v we_o give_v thou_o the_o like_a of_o this_o have_v job_n may_v a_o man_n be_v profitable_a to_o the_o lord_n be_v it_o any_o thing_n 22._o 6._o to_o the_o almighty_a that_o thou_o be_v righteous_a or_o be_v it_o pr●…fitable_a to_o he_o that_o thou_o make_v thy_o way_n upright_o but_o yet_o more_o clear_o explain_v he_o the_o same_o in_o another_o place_n if_o thou_o sin_n what_o do_v thou_o against_o he_o if_o thou_o be_v righteous_a what_o do_v thou_o to_o he_o or_o what_o receive_v he_o at_o thy_o hand_n thy_o wickedness_n may_v hurt_v a_o man_n as_o thou_o be_v and_o thy_o righteousness_n may_v profit_v the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o the_o all-sufficient_a majesty_n of_o god_n be_v neither_o increase_v by_o thy_o good_a nor_o impair_v by_o thy_o evil_n why_o then_o will_v you_o demand_v do_v he_o seek_v service_n only_o that_o of_o his_o it_o superaboundant_a goodness_n he_o may_v have_v occasion_n to_o bless_v thou_o if_o he_o crave_v any_o thing_n from_o thou_o it_o be_v not_o because_o he_o need_v thou_o but_o because_o thou_o need_v he_o he_o seek_v to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v give_v oh_o that_o we_o will_v consider_v this_o and_o so_o be_v encourage_v to_o serve_v our_o god_n even_o in_o this_o life_n the_o wage_n which_o he_o have_v already_o pay_v we_o in_o hand_n shall_v encourage_v we_o to_o serve_v he_o he_o may_v just_o demand_v of_o we_o who_o among_o 10._o you_o all_o do_v open_v the_o door_n of_o my_o temple_n for_o nothing_o we_o can_v never_o serve_v he_o sufficient_o for_o that_o which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o already_o but_o the_o wage_n pay_v be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o those_o which_o be_v promise_v verse_n 16._o they_o shall_v hunger_n no_o more_o nor_o thirst_v any_o more_o neither_o shall_v the_o sun_n light_n on_o they_o nor_o yet_o any_o heat_n the_o description_n of_o the_o felicity_n of_o saint_n in_o describe_v heaven_n have_v finish_v their_o warrefare_n on_o earth_n still_o continue_v they_o shall_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n no_o more_o in_o that_o he_o say_v no_o no_o more_o he_o tell_v we_o he_o be_v compare_v that_o life_n which_o be_v to_o come_v with_o this_o which_o we_o have_v now_o in_o this_o life_n the_o dear_a life_n saint_n of_o god_n be_v oftentimes_o most_o hardly_o handle_v so_o s._n paul_n profess_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v 37._o oft_o time_n in_o weariness_n and_o painfulness_n in_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n in_o cold_a and_o
why_o some_o wicked_a m●…_n be_v plague_v now_o and_o some_o spare_v psal._n 58._o 11._o correction_n of_o god_n child_n be_v with_o measure_n isaiah_n 27._o 6_o 7_o 8._o he_o deal_v not_o so_o with_o the_o wicked_a p●…imas_fw-la in_o apoc._n good_a thing●…_n prepare_v for_o good_a man_n whereof_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o be_v partaker_n aug._n the_o civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 8._o but_o the_o temporal_a good_a and_o evil_n of_o this_o life_n be_v common_a to_o both_o devour_v beast_n one_o of_o god_n ordinary_a plague_n hos._n 2._o 18._o levit._n 26._o deut._n 28._o ezech._n 14._o 2._o king_n 17._o 25._o plin._n lib_n 8._o ca._n 29._o example_n of_o base_a beast_n punish_v the_o pride_n of_o man_n one_o thing_n god_n offer_v to_o man_n and_o man_n will_v not_o have_v it_o three_o thing_n that_o man_n will_v have_v from_o god_n and_o god_n will_v not_o give_v they_o a_o just_a recompense_n psal._n 16._o 4._o psal._n 32._o 10._o comfort_n to_o saint_n suffer_v death_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o five_o seal_n a_o sight_n which_o saint_n out_o of_o the_o body_n have_v of_o god_n and_o of_o themselves_o a_o answer_n to_o they_o who_o ask_v if_o saint_n shall_v know_v one_o another_o in_o heaven_n mat._n 5._o 8._o 1._o john_n 3._o 3._o two_o example_n prove_v probable_o that_o it_o will_v be_v so_o gen._n 2._o 23._o mat._n 17._o but_o our_o knowledge_n there_o shall_v be_v far_o different_a from_o that_o which_o we_o have_v now_o a_o argument_n for_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n athanas._n altar_n honour_v with_o relic_n of_o martyr_n have_v no_o warrant_n here_o this_o altar_n under_o which_o soul_n rest_v be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n carthus_n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la hugo_n cardinal_n luke_n 23._o luke_n 16._o psal._n 30._o revel_v 7._o john_n 17._o 24._o how_o christ_n be_v both_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o sacrificer_n and_o the_o altar_n heb._n 9_o 14._o death_n compare_v to_o nebuchadnezar_n fire_n mat._n 10._o 28._o it_o burn_v our_o band_n but_o hurt_v not_o ourselves_o rom._n 8._o 35._o 36._o no_o religion_n so_o false_a but_o it_o have_v some_o to_o defend_v it_o and_o die_v for_o it_o the_o cry_v of_o saint_n note_n their_o fervent_a desire_n greg._n lib._n 2._o moral_a cap._n 6._o ibid._n psal._n 10._o 17._o how_o saint_n cry_v for_o vengeance_n four_o sort_n of_o cry_a sin_n gen._n 18._o 20_o 21_o exod._n 22._o 22_o 23_o deut._n 24._o 14_o 15_o jam._n 5._o 4._o gen._n 4._o 10._o they_o cry_v not_o out_o of_o passion_n or_o private_a revenge_n but_o out_o of_o zeal_n unto_o god_n his_o glory_n primus_fw-la in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la greg._n moral_a 2._o cap._n 6._o manuscript_n saint_n be_v so_o conjoin_v to_o the_o lord_n that_o to_o his_o will_n and_o not_o their_o own_o they_o conform_v themselves_o psal._n 58._o 10_o 11._o in_o prayer_n saint_n give_v god_n such_o style_n as_o may_v best_o move_v he_o and_o assure_v they_o of_o a_o good_a answer_n psal._n 94._o 20._o felicity_n of_o saint_n triumphant_a be_v not_o yet_o complete_a and_o why_o heb._n 11._o 40._o bern._n in_o sesto_fw-la omnium_fw-la sanct_n ser._n 2_o 3._o ribera_n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la some_o worthy_a father_n charge_v by_o ribera_n for_o heretic_n false_o god_n first_o judge_n than_o he_o avenge_n in_o all_o his_o process_n cognition_n go_v before_o execution_n gen._n 18._o 25._o psal._n 94._o 1._o to_o judge_v and_o revenge_n appertain_v to_o the_o lord_n math._n 7._o 1._o rom._n 14._o 4._o rom._n 12._o 19_o why_o worldly_a man_n be_v call_v inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n 2._o king_n 2._o a_o heart_n set_v to_o pray_v be_v a_o forerunner_n of_o a_o favourable_a answer_n answer_v to_o saint_n be_v give_v here_o first_o by_o a_o sign_n of_o white_a robe_n second_o by_o speech_n what_o their_o white_a robe_n signify_v reu._n 3._o 5._o saint_n know_v that_o in_o heaven_n by_o sight_n and_o feeling_n which_o here_o they_o know_v by_o faith_n god_n speak_v unto_o soul_n by_o inspire_v they_o aug._n ser._n 1._o de_fw-fr sanct._n 1._o joh._n 2._o 18._o last_o day_n now_o be_v not_o far_o off_o last_o day_n delay_v till_o saint_n be_v accomplish_v foolish_a be_v the_o wicked_a who_o persecute_v saint_n judg._n 16._o 30._o gen._n 19_o saint_n call_v brethren_n for_o three_o cause_n 1_o they_o have_v all_o one_o father_n ephes._n 3._o 15._o 2_o they_o be_v all_o quicken_v by_o one_o spirit_n galat._n 4._o 26._o 3_o they_o be_v all_o bear_v to_o one_o inheritance_n how_o all_o saint_n be_v fellow-servant_n revel_v 22._o 9_o angel_n be_v not_o our_o patron_n but_o our_o pattern_n of_o who_o we_o shall_v learn_v number_n of_o saint_n be_v know_v to_o god_n 2._o tim._n 2._o 19_o 2._o cor._n 13._o 5._o yet_o shall_v cuety_n saint_n make_v sure_a to_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v of_o that_o number_n 2._o tim._n 2._o 19_o 2._o pet._n 1._o 1._o 10._o the_o sum_n of_o the_o six_o seal_n in_o the_o fist_n seal_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o judgement_n in_o the_o six_o god_n answere●…_n they_o jaco._n rex_fw-la ●…rit_fw-la for_o the_o cry_n of_o saint_n move_v the_o lord_n much_o luk._n 18._o gen._n 18._o 25._o psal._n 116._o 15._o the_o six_o seal_n shall_v not_o be_v expound_v allegorical_o for_o two_o reason_n 1_o because_o the_o prophecy_n of_o apostasy_n come_v not_o in_o here_o but_o in_o the_o subsequent_a ptophecy_n 2_o apostasy_n can_v not_o terrify_v great_a man_n as_o here_o themselves_o be_v author_n and_o actor_n of_o it_o neither_o be_v this_o six_o seal_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o temporal_a judgement_n isaiah_n 13._o 10._o ezech._n 32._o 7._o hos._n 10._o 7._o luke_n 23._o 30._o argument_n move_v some_o interpreter_n to_o think_v that_o the_o six_o seal_n can_v import_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v answer_v argument_n prove_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 1_o the_o seven_o seal_n for_o etel_v nothing_o as_o the_o rest_n doc_fw-fr but_o introduce_v seven_o trumpet_n to_o foretell_v 2_o the_o six_o seal_n bring_v a_o universal_a change_n of_o all_o creature_n 3_o all_o the_o wicked_a universal_o be_v judge_v in_o it_o 4_o it_o be_v plain_o say_v to_o be_v the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n 5_o collation_n of_o this_o place_n with_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n prove_v that_o it_o be_v so_o mat._n 24._o 29._o luke_n 21._o 25._o mark_v 13._o 24._o who_o can_v deny_v this_o to_o point_v out_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n terror_n of_o the_o last_o day_n two_o way_n describe_v 1_o from_o the_o effect_n thereof_o on_o the_o insensible_a creature_n 2_o upon_o reasonable_a creature_n but_o reprobate_n of_o all_o sort_n earthquake_n be_v either_o ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a darken_v of_o the_o sun_n likewise_o be_v either_o natural_a or_o supernatural_a mark_v 15._o 33._o the_o bloody_a moon_n what_o it_o mean_v all_o creature_n conspire_v to_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o punish_v his_o enemy_n now_o the_o wicked_a be_v under_o wrath_n but_o have_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o creature_n they_o feel_v it_o not_o rom._n 1._o but_o at_o last_o the_o creature_n also_o shall_v forsake_v they_o psal._n 73._o sith_o comfort_v of_o creature_n will_v fail_v all_o flesh_n let_v we_o in_o time_n seek_v the_o creator_n cypria_n de_fw-fr mortal_a heb._n 12._o 28._o star_n fall_v like_o fig_n teach_v we_o that_o no_o state_n can_v stand_v when_o god_n shake_v it_o nahum_n 3._o 12._o the_o world_n shall_v fall_v yet_o it_o come_v to_o a_o ripe_a age_n heaven_n depart_v like_o a_o scroll_n expound_v these_o creature_n shall_v not_o perish_v in_o their_o substance_n but_o be_v change_v in_o their_o quality_n rom._n 8._o 21._o they_o like_v servant_n shall_v receive_v a_o new_a livery_n when_o the_o king_n son_n shall_v marry_v his_o spouse_n psal._n 102._o 25_o 26_o this_o be_v clear_v by_o the_o psalmist_n and_o saint_n peter_n 2._o pet._n 3._o 10._o 2._o pet._n 3._o 13._o every_o loss_n which_o man_n have_v receive_v from_o sin_n &_o satan_n shall_v be_v repair_v by_o jesus_n this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o reprobate_n and_o excrement_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o terror_n which_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v work_v in_o the_o reasonable_a but_o reprobate_a creature_n seven_o rank_n of_o man_n contain_v all_o combination_n wherein_o flesh_n can_v have_v confidence_n rom._n 2._o 11._o yet_o when_o they_o be_v all_o join_v they_o can_v resist_v judgement_n exod._n 5._o 2._o 2._o chro._n 32._o 14._o a_o glass_n for_o proud_a flesh_n to_o look_v into_o psal_n 2._o 10_o 11_o 12_o the_o wicked_a in_o their_o distress_n cry_v to_o the_o creature_n for_o their_o conscience_n they_o dare_v not_o run_v to_o their_o creator_n what_o a_o sure_a ground_n be_v here_o for_o papist_n to_o build_v their_o invocation_n of_o creature_n
in_o deed_n secrecy_n in_o thought_n beseem_v a_o secretary_n fidelity_n in_o service_n of_o your_o sovereign_n surety_n in_o friendship_n modesty_n in_o all_o your_o behaviour_n if_o education_n of_o your_o child_n in_o true_a religion_n if_o good_a example_n in_o the_o observance_n of_o god_n his_o public_a worship_n every_o sabbath_n if_o indefatigable_a pain_n in_o your_o call_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o public_a state_n wherein_o nothing_o can_v be_v see_v all_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n but_o catenati_fw-la labores_fw-la mutandi_fw-la semper_fw-la gravioribus_fw-la so_o that_o just_o it_o may_v be_v admire_v how_o in_o so_o weak_a a_o body_n such_o restless_a labour_n of_o mind_n may_v be_v sustain_v if_o all_o these_o i_o say_v may_v commend_v any_o man_n then_o have_v your_o lordship_n witness_n enough_o to_o speak_v for_o you_o and_o needs_o not_o the_o testimony_n of_o other_o loe_o now_o what_o a_o heap_n of_o good_a thing_n have_v the_o lord_n multiply_v upon_o you_o what_o remain_v but_o that_o you_o consider_v with_o david_n what_o shall_v i_o render_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o 12._o all_o his_o benefit_n towards_o i_o he_o himself_o will_v give_v you_o the_o answer_n my_o well-doing_n extend_v not_o to_o the_o lord_n but_o 16._o to_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o the_o excellent_a all_o my_o delight_n be_v in_o they_o great_a cause_n have_v david_n to_o love_n jonathan_n he_o can_v not_o get_v himself_o to_o requite_v his_o kindness_n but_o he_o inquire_v if_o any_o man_n be_v leave_v of_o the_o house_n of_o saul_n that_o he_o may_v show_v he_o mercy_n for_o jonathan_n sake_n 2._o and_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o he_o have_v a_o weak_a son_n mephibosheth_n lame_a of_o both_o his_o foot_n he_o despise_v he_o not_o for_o his_o inability_n but_o advance_v he_o for_o jonathan_n sake_n 13._o to_o eat_v at_o his_o own_o table_n as_o one_o of_o the_o king_n son_n my_o lord_n our_o jonathan_n be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o have_v not_o himself_o but_o for_o his_o sake_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o show_v mercy_n to_o his_o mephibosheth_n these_o be_v the_o levite_n the_o widow_n the_o fatherless_a the_o poor_a the_o stranger_n and_o the_o oppress_v let_v not_o the_o levite_n want_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o law_n in_o his_o righteous_a cause_n look_v with_o a_o tender_a eye_n to_o the_o upright_a action_n of_o weak_a and_o impotent_a man_n god_n be_v a_o righteous_a judge_n to_o all_o man_n but_o he_o have_v take_v these_o above_o other_o under_o his_o singular_a protection_n think_v it_o your_o honour_n and_o happiness_n also_o to_o be_v a_o protector_n of_o they_o so_o shall_v your_o lordship_n prosper_v still_o and_o god_n shall_v establish_v blessing_n upon_o you_o and_o your_o posterity_n i_o will_v pray_v to_o god_n for_o it_o and_o so_o rest_n your_o lordship_n to_o be_v command_v william_n b._n of_o galloway_n of_o my_o lord_n of_o galloway_n his_o learned_a commentary_n on_o the_o revelation_n to_o this_o admire_a discoverer_n give_v place_n you_o who_o first_o tame_v the_o sea_n the_o wind_n outrun_v and_o match_v the_o day_n bright_a coachman_n in_o your_o race_n americus_n columbus_n magellan_n it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o your_o ingenious_a care_n and_o well-spent_a pain_n another_o world_n bring_v forth_o for_o beast_n bird_n tree_n for_o gem_n and_o metal_n rare_a yet_o all_o be_v earth_n be_v but_o of_o earthly_a worth_n he_o a_o more_o precious_a world_n to_o we_o descry_v rich_a in_o more_o treasure_n than_o both_o indes_n contain_v fair_a in_o more_o beauty_n than_o man_n wit_n can_v feign_v who_o sun_n not_o set_v who_o people_n never_o die_v earth_n shall_v your_o brow_n deck_v with_o stil-verdant_a bay_n but_o heaven_n crown_n he_o with_o star_n immortal_a ray_n master_n william_n drumond_n of_o sawthorn-denne_n another_o reaper_n not_o few_o do_v labour_n in_o this_o field_n and_o it_o to_o they_o great_a store_n of_o fruit_n do_v yield_v but_o here_o come_v one_o apace_o behind_o they_o all_o to_o gather_v up_o what_o by_o their_o hand_n do_v fall_v peruse_v his_o stuff_n and_o thou_o shall_v for_o thy_o gain_n find_v more_o than_o other_o haru_v to_o be_v his_o glean_v i._o a._n pathmos_n a_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o prophecy_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n contain_v in_o the_o four_o five_o six_o and_o seven_o chapter_n my_o help_n be_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o whole_a book_n of_o holy_a fruit_n scripture_n be_v of_o three_o rank_n historical_a doctrinal_a prophetical_a they_o be_v so_o denominate_v from_o the_o principal_a matter_n in_o they_o contain_v of_o all_o these_o coniunct_o arise_v unto_o we_o a_o threefold_a fruit_n the_o first_o of_o conversion_n the_o conversion_n second_o of_o consolation_n the_o three_o of_o confirmation_n the_o first_o once_o for_o all_o be_v touch_v by_o the_o psalmist_n the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v perfect_a convert_n the_o soul_n 7._o the_o second_o by_o the_o apostle_n whatsoever_o thing_n 4._o be_v write_v be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o we_o through_o patience_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v have_v hope_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o many_o be_v the_o trouble_n consolation_n of_o the_o righteous_a yet_o against_o every_o cross_n the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o in_o his_o word_n sufficient_a consolation_n 19_o the_o three_o be_v set_v down_o by_o our_o saviour_n these_o confirmation_n thing_n have_v i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v offend_v that_o when_o the_o hour_n shall_v come_v you_o may_v 4._o remember_v that_o i_o tell_v you_o of_o they_o and_o this_o fruit_n of_o confirmation_n we_o have_v especial_o by_o book_n prophetical_a of_o this_o nature_n be_v this_o book_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o prophetical_a title_n give_v unto_o it_o for_o in_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n it_o be_v call_v a_o apocalypse_n or_o revelation_n that_o be_v a_o open_n or_o uncover_v of_o thing_n which_o be_v hide_v and_o secret_a before_o and_o in_o the_o four_o verse_n it_o be_v call_v a_o prophecy_n thus_o have_v we_o it_o not_o only_o a_o prophecy_n or_o prediction_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o a_o prophecy_n reveal_v and_o expound_v partly_o by_o christ_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o angel_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o where_o other_o book_n faith_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v write_v to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o teach_v we_o what_o we_o must_v do_v if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v this_o book_n be_v write_v not_o so_o much_o to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n though_o in_o part_n it_o do_v that_o also_o as_o to_o confirm_v we_o in_o it_o that_o for_o no_o violent_a persecution_n follow_v it_o for_o no_o fraudulent_a heresy_n by_o deceit_n impugn_v it_o for_o no_o external_a change_n befalling_a the_o church_n for_o no_o prosperous_a prevail_a of_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o as_o for_o a_o time_n will_v appear_v to_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v forsake_v that_o faith_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v god_n the_o father_n from_o he_o church_n it_o come_v by_o this_o order_n the_o father_n give_v it_o to_o the_o son_n the_o son_n to_o a_o angel_n the_o angel_n give_v it_o to_o s._n john_n and_o s._n john_n send_v it_o to_o the_o church_n the_o matter_n whereof_o it_o entreat_v be_v comprise_v in_o this_o short_a sum_n in_o it_o god_n show_v to_o his_o servant_n thing_n which_o must_v short_o be_v do_v namely_o 1._o concern_v the_o church_n her_o persecution_n by_o enemy_n prophecy_n the_o change_n and_o mutation_n of_o the_o visible_a state_n thereof_o defection_n of_o apostate_n illusion_n of_o heretic_n fearful_a eclipse_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n all_o these_o be_v to_o fall_v out_o in_o that_o hour_n of_o tentation_n to_o come_v upon_o all_o the_o world_n for_o 10._o trial_n of_o they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o this_o prophecy_n be_v distinct_o foretold_v by_o the_o lord_n that_o his_o saint_n and_o servant_n in_o all_o age_n may_v be_v confirm_v against_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v they_o come_v to_o pass_v know_v that_o they_o fall_v not_o out_o by_o accident_n nor_o by_o the_o will_n or_o power_n of_o man_n but_o according_a to_o the_o determinate_a counsel_n of_o god_n who_o have_v also_o let_v his_o church_n see_v beforehand_o a_o comfortable_a out-gate_n and_o end_n of_o they_o all_o and_o as_o both_o for_o the_o matter_n and_o author_n this_o us._n book_n shall_v be_v welcome_a to_o we_o so_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n do_v great_o commend_v it_o it_o be_v send_v unto_o we_o after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o be_v
under_o the_o type_n of_o another_o beast_n have_v two_o horn_n like_o the_o lamb_n but_o speak_v like_o the_o dragon_n the_o plain_a and_o particular_a prophecy_n of_o antichrist_n chapter_n or_o apostate_n pope_n in_o their_o kingdom_n oppon_v themselves_o covered_o and_o by_o a_o consequent_a for_o he_o as_o a_o mystical_a enemy_n be_v describe_v from_o the_o thirteen_o verse_n of_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n to_o the_o end_n thereof_o he_o be_v describe_v from_o his_o original_n from_o his_o quality_n from_o his_o work_a power_n from_o his_o great_a success_n and_o from_o his_o mystical_a name_n his_o beginning_n be_v base_a but_o by_o degree_n he_o grow_v to_o that_o height_n that_o he_o cause_v all_o 16._o both_o small_a and_o great_a rich_a and_o poor_a free_a and_o bond_n to_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o their_o right_a hand_n or_o in_o their_o forehead_n and_o that_o under_o no_o less_o pain_n than_o the_o loss_n of_o life_n or_o liberty_n here_o the_o pope_n be_v at_o his_o height_n and_o in_o the_o very_a top_n and_o ru●…fe_n of_o his_o pride_n but_o from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n to_o destruction_n the_o end_n of_o the_o twenty_o come_v in_o a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o fall_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n the_o beast_n look_v like_o a_o lamb_n with_o his_o two_o horn_n seem_v to_o over-rule_v all_o a_o few_o except_v who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o lamb_n book_n of_o life_n there_o we_o see_v he_o in_o such_o 8._o grandeur_n that_o all_o the_o world_n follow_v he_o wonder_v at_o he_o and_o worship_v he_o but_o in_o the_o fourteen_o there_o appear_v a_o party_n against_o that_o counterfeit_a lamb_n to_o wit_n the_o true_a lamb_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n jesus_n stand_v on_o mount_n s●…on_n with_o his_o warrior_n few_o by_o many_o than_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o two_o horn_a beast_n but_o more_o worthy_a and_o this_o prophecy_n of_o the_o pope_n his_o destruction_n we_o have_v it_o first_o in_o typical_a or_o figurative_a speech_n two-sold_a to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sixteen_o chapter_n next_o in_o more_o plain_n and_o simple_a speech_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twenty_o to_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o inclusive_a for_o typical_a the_o first_o the_o true_a lamb_n enter_v into_o battle_n with_o the_o counterfeit_n and_o overcome_v he_o before_o the_o battle_n there_o go_v first_o four_o proclamation_n chapter_n make_v by_o heavenly_a herald_n in_o the_o fourteen_o chapter_n after_o they_o in_o the_o fourteen_o verse_n he_o who_o before_o appear_v like_o a_o lamb_n come_v out_o a_o crown_a king_n arm_v with_o judiciary_n power_n against_o his_o enemy_n then_o in_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n before_o he_o proceed_v to_o judgement_n saint_n in_o most_o comfortable_a manner_n be_v secure_v first_o and_o angel_n messenger_n and_o executor_n of_o god_n wrath_n upon_o the_o beast_n be_v call_v prepare_v and_o furnish_v for_o that_o work_n all_o this_o preparation_n be_v make_v before_o then_o in_o the_o sixteen_o follow_v the_o execution_n the_o vial_n of_o god_n wrath_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o proclamation_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o beast_n and_o they_o that_o worship_v he_o there_o by_o degree_n a_o man_n may_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n to_o decay_v as_o he_o grow_v by_o degree_n the_o seven_o trumpet_n bring_v with_o it_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o and_o conclude_v the_o first_o prophecy_n of_o antichrist_n his_o destruction_n foretold_v under_o typical_a and_o figurative_a speech_n the_o other_o prophecy_n of_o his_o destruction_n be_v in_o simple_a speech_n more_o simple_a plain_a and_o more_o pungent_a than_o the_o other_o and_o this_o reach_v from_o the_o seventeen_o chapter_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o one_o &_o twenty_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o double_v this_o prophecy_n because_o it_o concern_v we_o most_o in_o these_o last_o time_n that_o he_o may_v leave_v this_o comfort_n with_o his_o church_n and_o assure_v his_o servant_n that_o babylon_n shall_v fall_v yea_o be_v fall_v rome_n the_o seat_n and_o throne_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v be_v over-turned_n and_o make_v desolate_a even_o in_o this_o present_a life_n natural_a man_n and_o blind_v papist_n make_v a_o scorn_n rome_n of_o this_o when_o they_o hear_v it_o yea_o they_o think_v it_o impossible_a consider_v that_o the_o whore_n of_o babel_n have_v so_o many_o confederate_n even_o the_o mighty_a king_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o have_v devote_a themselves_o to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n upon_o these_o hope_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v confident_a and_o contemn_v this_o prophecy_n in_o her_o own_o mind_n she_o sit_v as_o her_o grandmother_n in_o the_o east_n old_a babel_n do_v like_o a_o queen_n and_o think_v 7._o with_o herself_o i_o shall_v never_o be_v move_v but_o the_o lord_n ●…re_o have_v say_v the_o contrary_a and_o not_o only_o have_v say_v it_o but_o confirm_v it_o for_o a_o mighty_a angel_n take_v 21._o up_o a_o stone_n like_o a_o great_a millstone_n and_o cast_v it_o lord_n into_o the_o sea_n say_v thus_o with_o violence_n shall_v the_o great_a city_n babylon_n be_v throw_v down_o and_o shall_v be_v sound_a no_o more_o at_o all_o when_o they_o raise_v that_o millstone_n again_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n then_o shall_v i_o think_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o may_v repair_v the_o ruin_n of_o their_o babel_n but_o that_o can_v never_o be_v if_o they_o will_v consider_v how_o within_o these_o hundred_o year_n the_o water_n of_o 1_o their_o euphrates_n have_v be_v dry_v and_o how_o the_o lord_n have_v darken_v the_o throne_n of_o the_o beast_n they_o may_v learn_v of_o that_o which_o be_v past_a what_o they_o may_v look_v for_o in_o the_o time_n to_o come_v their_o dagon_n be_v fall_v 3._o before_o the_o ark_n they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o set_v he_o up_o again_o but_o he_o shall_v fall_v more_o and_o more_o and_o his_o last_o fall_n shall_v be_v the_o great_a certain_a it_o be_v that_o this_o babel_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o pope_n revelation_n be_v rome_n which_o the_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v and_o themselves_o see_v it_o will_v be_v make_v desolate_a and_o the_o pope_n cast_v out_o of_o it_o but_o this_o babel_n be_v the_o whorish_a church_n of_o rome_n which_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v make_v plain_a hereafter_o they_o glory_n in_o their_o new_a conquest_n of_o roman_a catholic_n among_o the_o indian_n and_o our_o antipode_n they_o do_v well_o in_o time_n to_o provide_v a_o temple_n for_o their_o dagon_n and_o a_o new_a palace_n for_o their_o pope_n since_o rome_n can_v retain_v he_o if_o wickedness_n shall_v have_v a_o house_n it_o be_v 11._o meet_a she_o build_v in_o shinar_n not_o in_o zion_n their_o pope_n will_v be_v most_o honour_v where_o he_o be_v least_o know_v not_o in_o these_o part_n where_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v discover_v his_o hypocrisy_n and_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o raven_a wolf_n under_o sheep_n clothing_n let_v not_o they_o therefore_o flatter_v themselves_o in_o papist_n their_o riches_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o their_o friend_n and_o blind_a follower_n or_o in_o their_o confederate_a king_n and_o prince_n let_v they_o not_o upon_o these_o motive_n put_v the_o evil_a day_n far_o from_o they_o for_o her_o plague_n 8._o shall_v come_v in_o one_o day_n death_n mourning_n and_o famine_n and_o she_o shall_v be_v utter_o burn_v with_o fire_n let_v papist_n pride_v themselves_o in_o the_o power_n of_o flesh_n mark_v what_o follow_v strong_a be_v the_o lord_n who_o judge_n she_o where_o the_o lord_n pursue_v be_v the_o strength_n of_o man_n able_a to_o protect_v or_o defend_v this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o three_o prophecy_n which_o we_o pray_v the_o lord_n hasten_v to_o perform_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o poor_a afflict_a church_n the_o four_o and_o five_o chapter_n have_v a_o two_o fold_v vision_n of_o preparation_n the_o six_o and_o seven_o have_v the_o first_o vision_n of_o prediction_n chap._n four_o leave_v the_o interpretation_n preparation_n of_o the_o first_o three_o chapter_n which_o be_v plain_a we_o begin_v at_o this_o four_o and_o in_o the_o entry_n lie_v this_o for_o a_o ground_n that_o in_o the_o four_o and_o five_o chapter_n there_o be_v no_o vision_n of_o prediction_n but_o only_o a_o vision_n of_o preparation_n for_o the_o subsequent_a prediction_n as_o the_o first_o prophecy_n of_o the_o present_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n describe_v in_o the_o seven_o epistle_n have_v a_o convenient_a preparatorie_n vision_n go_v before_o it_o so_o have_v the_o second_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o preparatorie_n vision_n go_v before_o the_o first_o prophecy_n be_v
this_o i_o see_v 14._o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n this_o serve_v to_o prepare_v both_o s._n john_n and_o vision_n the_o church_n to_o receive_v this_o revelation_n reverent_o and_o certain_o to_o believe_v it_o consider_v that_o he_o receive_v this_o vision_n not_o from_o one_o who_o know_v not_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o who_o give_v the_o warning_n walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o candlestick_n and_o have_v eye_n like_a unto_o flame_n of_o fire_n 14._o which_o by_o no_o cover_n can_v be_v hold_v out_o from_o look_v and_o pierce_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o every_o man_n and_o no_o less_o convenient_a be_v this_o preparatory_a twofold_a vision_n premit_v before_o the_o second_o prophecy_n if_o we_o consider_v both_o the_o part_n thereof_o for_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n there_o be_v a_o vision_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n who_o as_o he_o make_v the_o world_n so_o be_v he_o here_o describe_v sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n and_o the_o glassy_a sea_n figure_v the_o world_n before_o he_o 4._o which_o he_o rule_v and_o govern_v at_o his_o good_a pleasure_n direct_v all_o the_o change_n and_o trouble_v thereof_o to_o his_o own_o determinate_a end_n for_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n give_v unto_o he_o the_o praise_n of_o a_o powerful_a faithful_a and_o provident_a creator_n and_o conserver_n angel_n go_v before_o and_o saint_n redeem_v follow_v after_o thou_o a●…_n worthy_a o_o lord_n to_o receive_v 11._o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n for_o thou_o have_v create_v all_o thing_n and_o for_o thy_o pleasure_n they_o be_v a●…d_n be_v create_v again_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n there_o be_v 5._o a_o vision_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o christ_n the_o redeemer_n exercise_v his_o prophetical_a office_n to_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o take_v the_o seal_a book_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o who_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n he_o open_v it_o and_o reveal_v to_o his_o church_n such_o thing_n as_o in_o the_o wise_a counsel_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v conclude_v to_o be_v do_v concern_v she_o for_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n both_o of_o angel_n and_o man_n render_v unto_o he_o the_o praise_n of_o a_o glorious_a redeemer_n thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o take_v the_o book_n and_o 9_o open_v the_o seal_n thereof_o for_o thou_o be_v slay_v and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n by_o thy_o blood_n in_o the_o first_o song_n which_o be_v sing_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n angel_n begin_v and_o saint_n redeem_v follow_v in_o the_o second_o which_o be_v sing_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n the_o redeemer_n saint_n redeem_v go_v before_o and_o their_o song_n be_v second_v by_o angel_n and_o all_o creature_n now_o these_o two_o be_v join_v together_o it_o shall_v subsequent_a appear_v easy_o how_o this_o preparatorie_n vision_n prepare_v a_o way_n to_o the_o prophecy_n and_o render_v a_o complete_a comfort_n to_o the_o church_n he_o be_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o prophecy_n follow_v of_o fearful_a trouble_n tentation_n and_o battle_n by_o violent_a persecutor_n and_o fraudulent_a heretic_n but_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v discourage_v therewith_o this_o vision_n be_v permit_v wherein_o first_o be_v declare_v that_o howsoever_o the_o world_n be_v a_o turbulent_a sea_n yet_o all_o the_o waltring_n and_o mutation_n thereof_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n nothing_o fall_v out_o by_o accident_n or_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o all_o these_o as_o they_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o father_n so_o be_v they_o reveal_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o son_n and_o we_o be_v tell_v of_o they_o beforehand_o that_o when_o they_o come_v to_o 1._o pass_v we_o shall_v not_o be_v offend_v the_o judicious_a and_o indifferent_a reader_n may_v clear_o perceive_v this_o to_o be_v the_o very_a natural_a order_n and_o method_n of_o these_o two_o chapter_n they_o contain_v a_o introduction_n to_o the_o prophecy_n but_o they_o be_v far_o mistake_v who_o seek_v a_o prophetical_a prediction_n in_o they_o verse_n 1._o after_o this_o i_o look_v and_o behold_v a_o door_n be_v open_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o first_o voice_n which_o i_o hear_v be_v as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o trumpet_n talk_v with_o i_o which_o say_v come_v up_o hither_o and_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o thing_n which_o must_v be_v hereafter_o after_o this_o this_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o vision_n order_n of_o the_o vision_n not_o to_o the_o interuall_a or_o long_a distance_n of_o time_n for_o all_o these_o vision_n s._n john_n see_v they_o in_o one_o day_n i_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n on_o 1._o the_o lord_n day_n and_o i_o hear_v behind_o i_o a_o great_a voice_n and_o yet_o quaelibet_fw-la visio_fw-la svam_fw-la habuit_fw-la morulam_fw-la every_o carthus_n vision_n have_v the_o own_o space_n of_o time_n by_o order_n one_o after_o another_o be_v they_o reveal_v unto_o he_o yet_o so_o that_o upon_o one_o day_n and_o in_o one_o trance_n he_o see_v all_o and_o this_o he_o signify_v in_o the_o entry_n as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o sight_n what_o way_n s._n john_n ●…ight_n see_v these_o vision_n because_o frequent_a mention_n be_v make_v of_o it_o in_o this_o prophecy_n it_o be_v expedient_a that_o once_o for_o all_o we_o speak_v of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a creature_n sight_n 1._o natural_a 2._o prophetical_a 3._o spiritual_a the_o natural_a sight_n be_v common_a both_o to_o good_a and_o evil_a this_o be_v that_o sight_n we_o have_v by_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n see_v in_o his_o work_n for_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n 10._o that_o be_v his_o eternal_a power_n and_o godhead_n be_v see_v and_o understand_v by_o the_o thing_n he_o have_v make_v the_o second_o sight_n be_v prophetical_a yet_o common_a both_o also_o both_o to_o good_a and_o evil_a i_o mean_v not_o to_o all_o but_o some_o of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o for_o balaam_n have_v it_o this_o be_v a_o sight_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v make_v by_o revelation_n representation_n or_o both_o a_o sight_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v by_o representation_n be_v offer_v to_o 24._o pharaoh_n and_o to_o nabuchadnezzar_n but_o they_o want_v the_o revelation_n of_o it_o they_o can_v tell_v what_o they_o see_v but_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o it_o signify_v till_o it_o be_v declare_v to_o the_o one_o by_o joseph_n to_o the_o other_o by_o 2._o daniel_n sometime_o again_o there_o be_v a_o sight_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v show_v to_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o revelation_n without_o representation_n such_o a_o sight_n many_o of_o the_o prophet_n have_v but_o here_o to_o saint_n john_n thing_n to_o come_v be_v show_v both_o the_o way_n first_o by_o representation_n next_o by_o revelation_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o vision_n three_o thing_n must_v be_v observe_v that_o it_o be_v interna_fw-la imaginaria_fw-la intellectualis_fw-la it_o be_v first_o carthus_n internal_a by_o the_o mind_n for_o his_o bodily_a sense_n intellectual_a be_v now_o asleep_a his_o spirit_n for_o a_o time_n have_v after_o a_o sort_n derelinquish_v his_o body_n next_o it_o be_v imaginary_a for_o by_o type_n similitude_n resemblance_n and_o figure_n of_o corporal_a and_o material_a thing_n form_v in_o his_o mind_n be_v they_o represent_v to_o he_o three_o it_o be_v intellectual_a for_o by_o heavenly_a illumination_n s._n john_n be_v teach_v and_o inform_v to_o understand_v true_o what_o these_o type_n similitude_n and_o figure_n do_v represent_v and_o signify_v otherwise_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o prophet_n nor_o able_a to_o show_v to_o the_o church_n that_o which_o he_o understand_v not_o himself_o i_o mark_v this_o to_o stop_v the_o blasphemous_a mouth_n of_o some_o atheist_n who_o in_o disgrace_n of_o this_o prophecy_n have_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o s._n john_n understand_v not_o what_o he_o write_v to_o the_o church_n the_o three_o sight_n be_v spiritual_a and_o singular_a pertain_v call_v to_o saint_n only_o call_v and_o choose_v this_o be_v a_o sight_n of_o god_n fatherly_a and_o merciful_a face_n shine_v upon_o we_o in_o christ_n bring_v with_o it_o to_o our_o fowl_n joy_v unspeakable_a and_o glorious_a and_o this_o sight_n we_o have_v in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n for_o now_o we_o see_v that_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o in_o a_o mirror_n 18._o through_o a_o veil_n dark_o so_o that_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o sight_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v hereafter_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n account_v this_o sight_n to_o be_v no_o sight_n we_o walk_v not_o by_o sight_n but_o by_o faith_n and_o s._n 7._o peter_n affirm_v we_o have_v not_o yet_o see_v he_o but_o 1._o s._n john_n
sevocate_v their_o mind_n from_o their_o body_n the_o function_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v suspend_v towards_o the_o body_n that_o she_o may_v intend_v all_o her_o power_n towards_o similitude_n the_o lord_n so_o do_v he_o with_o ezechiel_n and_o daniel_n yea_o even_o in_o our_o daily_a christian_a conversation_n we_o find_v that_o as_o the_o fish_n remora_n when_o it_o cleave_v to_o the_o side_n of_o the_o ship_n under_o sail_n retard_v the_o course_n thereof_o so_o be_v it_o with_o the_o body_n when_o the_o soul_n will_v ascend_v and_o mount_v up_o to_o the_o lord_n the_o body_n draw_v it_o back_o and_o hold_v it_o down_o therefore_o caro_fw-la animae_fw-la est_fw-la remora_n say_v nazianzen_n flesh_n be_v the_o stay_n and_o hindrance_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o this_o may_v be_v best_a see_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o prayer_n prayer_n when_o the_o spiritual_a life_n be_v strong_a then_o be_v the_o natural_a weak_a if_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v fervent_o intend_v towards_o god_n the_o eye_n see_v not_o those_o object_n the_o ear_n hear_v not_o those_o sound_n which_o be_v near_o unto_o they_o but_o when_o again_o natural_a ☞_o necessity_n force_v the_o soul_n to_o return_v to_o a_o familiarity_n with_o the_o body_n than_o her_o familiarity_n with_o the_o lord_n relent_v and_o be_v interrupt_v this_o let_v we_o see_v first_o that_o heavenly_a mystery_n transcend_v the_o capacity_n of_o man_n till_o god_n make_v we_o able_a to_o conceive_v they_o above_o any_o ability_n that_o be_v in_o nature_n if_o s._n john_n have_v not_o be_v ravish_v in_o the_o spirit_n after_o a_o divine_a manner_n he_o can_v not_o have_v understand_v these_o divine_a thing_n and_o again_o we_o may_v perceive_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o no_o man_n can_v see_v the_o lord_n and_o live_v this_o shall_v make_v we_o well_o content_a in_o the_o day_n of_o death_n to_o lay_v aside_o our_o body_n that_o we_o may_v ascend_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o s._n luke_n say_v of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v true_a of_o all_o christian_n the_o day_n of_o our_o death_n be_v the_o day_n of_o our_o assumption_n up_o into_o heaven_n and_o behold_v a_o throne_n before_o godspake_v to_o the_o he_o ear_n of_o s._n john_n now_o he_o offer_v a_o vision_n to_o his_o eye_n this_o be_v the_o lord_n order_n and_o we_o must_v observe_v it_o will_v thou_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v content_a first_o to_o hear_v he_o auditus_fw-la gradus_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la visum_fw-la hearing_n 41._o be_v a_o step_n to_o see_v as_o we_o have_v hear_v so_o have_v we_o see_v if_o first_o we_o hear_v as_o we_o shall_v no_o doubt_n 8._o but_o next_o we_o shall_v see_v what_o we_o will_v they_o who_o delight_v not_o now_o to_o hear_v the_o lord_n shall_v not_o be_v delight_v hereafter_o with_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o joyful_a face_n and_o this_o for_o the_o order_n now_o to_o the_o matter_n we_o have_v here_o in_o a_o vision_n represent_v the_o god_n glorious_a majesty_n of_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n govern_v all_o thing_n therein_o according_a to_o his_o gracious_a pleasure_n and_o first_o s._n john_n see_v a_o throne_n figure_v kingly_a power_n and_o authority_n next_o a_o heaven_n throne_n in_o heaven_n express_v the_o supremacy_n and_o height_n of_o his_o government_n his_o throne_n be_v above_o all_o the_o throne_n of_o king_n in_o the_o world_n by_o he_o the_o decree_n of_o man_n be_v establish_v he_o ratify_v or_o revoke_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o be_v countable_a unto_o none_o his_o holiness_n also_o hereby_o be_v express_v god_n will_v not_o do_v wicked_o neither_o will_v he_o pervert_v 12._o judgement_n he_o render_v the_o work_n of_o a_o man_n unto_o he_o and_o cause_v every_o man_n to_o find_v according_a to_o his_o way_n say_v elihu_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n can_v 25._o do_v unrighteous_o say_v abraham_n three_o above_o throne_n the_o throne_n be_v a_o rainbow_n like_o a_o stately_a ceiling_n four_o about_o the_o throne_n be_v twenty_o and_o four_o elder_n figure_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n a_o glorious_a court_n wherein_o there_o be_v none_o but_o senior_n throne_n and_o king_n far_o surmount_v in_o glory_n all_o the_o court_n of_o the_o world_n five_o between_o the_o throne_n and_o the_o circle_n of_o senior_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n and_o round_o about_o the_o throne_n be_v four_o live_a creature_n full_a of_o eye_n all_o have_a wing_n shadow_v the_o company_n of_o innumerable_a angel_n solomon_n his_o throne_n be_v of_o ivory_n underprop_a 10._o with_o carve_a lion_n but_o nothing_o comparable_a to_o these_o live_n understand_v and_o speedy_o fly_v cherubim_n which_o execute_v the_o will_n of_o this_o great_a and_o everliving_a king_n sixthly_a before_o throne_n the_o throne_n there_o be_v a_o glassy_a sea_n like_o crystal_n represent_v this_o sragill_n and_o welter_a world_n which_o as_o it_o be_v make_v by_o the_o lord_n so_o also_o be_v it_o rule_v and_o govern_v by_o he_o he_o see_v all_o thing_n in_o it_o and_o govern_v all_o the_o incident_a mutation_n and_o change_n thereof_o unto_o his_o own_o determinate_a end_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o vision_n which_o as_o i_o say_v be_v a_o preparatoire_fw-fr vision_n for_o prediction_n the_o subsequent_a vision_n of_o prediction_n wherein_o because_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o foreshow_v sore_a trouble_n many_o change_n &_o gre●…uous_a accident_n that_o be_v to_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o poor_a church_n in_o the_o entry_n he_o draw_v we_o up_o to_o look_v to_o himself_o as_o unto_o a_o glorious_a king_n sit_v on_o his_o throne_n rule_v the_o world_n which_o be_v before_o he_o with_o great_a power_n and_o wisdom_n so_o that_o nothing_o fall_v out_o in_o it_o by_o chance_n but_o according_a to_o his_o providence_n neither_o be_v it_o satin_n malice_n nor_o man_n his_o wit_n that_o carry_v sway_n in_o the_o world_n to_o draw_v the_o event_n of_o thing_n which_o way_n they_o wil._n no_o no_o satan_n and_o man_n in_o all_o their_o purpose_n &_o plot_n be_v overruled_n by_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o own_o will_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o church_n thus_o in_o the_o beginning_n have_v we_o a_o strong_a confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o be_v convenient_o prepare_v to_o receive_v the_o prophecy_n follow_v with_o faith_n and_o reverence_n assure_v ourselves_o that_o according_a to_o it_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n will_v be_v because_o it_o come_v and_o be_v reveal_v from_o he_o who_o rule_v the_o world_n man_n and_o doubtless_o if_o our_o eye_n be_v open_v to_o see_v that_o glorious_a sight_n of_o the_o supreme_a majesty_n rule_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o will_n as_o here_o saint_n john_n see_v it_o or_o at_o least_o if_o we_o will_v look_v into_o it_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n it_o will_v dissipate_v all_o these_o doubt_n and_o fear_n which_o come_v in_o our_o mind_n arise_v from_o the_o greatness_n of_o mahomet_n the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o blind_a prince_n enemy_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n band_v and_o confederate_v themselves_o against_o the_o 2._o lord_n and_o his_o anointed_n when_o the_o servant_n of_o elisha_n be_v afraid_a at_o the_o huge_a army_n of_o aramite_n which_o compass_v dothan_n his_o master_n comfort_v he_o fear_v not_o say_v he_o there_o be_v more_o with_o we_o then_o be_v against_o us._n and_o when_o according_a to_o the_o prayer_n of_o elisha_n the_o lord_n open_v his_o eye_n than_o he_o see_v that_o the_o mountain_n be_v full_a of_o horse_n and_o chariot_n of_o fire_n round_o about_o elisha_n strong_a to_o defend_v he_o than_o the_o aramite_n be_v to_o pursue_v he_o no_o less_o shall_v we_o be_v comfort_v against_o all_o flesh_n terror_n of_o flesh_n if_o our_o eye_n be_v open_v to_o see_v this_o glorious_a majesty_n that_o saint_n john_n see_v for_o what_o be_v all_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n compare_v with_o he_o when_o he_o please_v he_o cut_v off_o the_o spirit_n of_o prince_n 12._o and_o be_v terrible_a unto_o they_o let_v we_o rest_v in_o he_o god_n be_v 1._o our_o hope_n and_o strength_n and_o help_v in_o trouble_n ready_a to_o be_v find_v we_o will_v not_o fear_v though_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v move_v and_o mountain_n fall_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o sea_n for_o the_o throne_n of_o our_o god_n stand_v stable_a it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a blindness_n that_o worm_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v take_v up_o a_o banner_n against_o he_o who_o throne_n be_v in_o heaven_n their_o proposition_n be_v proud_a let_v we_o cast_v 2._o 11._o off_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o let_v we_o build_v a_o conclusion_n
tower_n who_o top_n may_v reach_v into_o heaven_n but_o their_o assumption_n of_o mean_n to_o make_v good_a their_o proposition_n be_v but_o weak_a they_o have_v but_o brick_n and_o clay_n to_o mount_v up_o their_o fort_n against_o heaven_n they_o be_v flesh_n not_o spirit_n dust_n before_o the_o wind_n stubble_n before_o the_o 3._o fire_n thus_o of_o a_o proud_a proposition_n and_o weak_a assumption_n 〈◊〉_d nothing_o follow_v in_o all_o their_o intention_n but_o a_o fall_v &_o fectlesse_a conclusion_n god_n disappoint_v their_o thought_n and_o turn_v all_o their_o deed_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o his_o own_o will_n this_o vision_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o hugo_n lyra_n interpreter_n who_o some_o of_o the_o recent_n follow_v be_v expound_v to_o be_v a_o representation_n of_o god_n his_o constant_a &_o gracious_a administration_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a these_o will_v have_v the_o heaven_n here_o to_o signify_v the_o church_n the_o throne_n to_o be_v true_a religion_n the_o glassy_a sea_n to_o be_v baptism_n or_o as_o other_o think_v doctrine_n the_o four_o live_a creature_n full_a of_o eye_n to_o be_v pastor_n which_o hereafter_o god_n willing_a in_o the_o particular_a explanation_n shall_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v far_o otherwise_o this_o will_v not_o be_v find_v the_o right_a accommodation_n type_n of_o this_o type_n we_o rest_v in_o that_o we_o have_v speak_v as_o be_v the_o very_a truth_n of_o this_o type_n for_o the_o further_a clear_v whereof_o look_v back_o and_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v on_o the_o first_o verse_n a_o door_n open_v in_o heaven_n we_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o the_o prophecy_n wherein_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n both_o militant_a and_o triumphant_a be_v set_v down●…_n we_o be_v but_o in_o the_o entry_n of_o the_o prophecy_n wherein_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prophecy_n god_n the_o father_n and_o reveal●…r_n of_o it_o god_n the_o son_n be_v in_o most_o glorious_a manner_n represent_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o may_v prepare_v the_o church_n to_o receive_v and_o believe_v this_o prophecy_n consider_v from_o who_o it_o come_v so_o that_o heaven_n in_o this_o place_n be_v neither_o the_o church_n militant_a nor_o the_o church_n triumphant_a nor_o yet_o the_o place_n thereof_o but_o it_o be_v that_o representative_a heaven_n make_v to_o saint_n john_n in_o his_o ecstasy_n wherein_o a_o glorious_a adumbration_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n rule_v all_o be_v make_v unto_o he_o and_o from_o who_o he_o receive_v revelation_n in_o type_n of_o such_o truth_n as_o hereafter_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v concern_v the_o church_n both_o militant_a and_o triumphant_a it_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o reader_n attentive_o to_o consider_v this_o that_o he_o may_v understand_v that_o which_o perhaps_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o explain_v and_o yet_o be_v most_o needful_a to_o be_v know_v here_o there_o be_v no_o vision_n of_o prediction_n but_o of_o preparation_n and_o one_o sit_v one_o the_o throne_n he_o say_v simple_o he_o i●…_n see_v one_o sit_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o tell_v not_o who_o he_o give_v he_o no_o name_n god_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o name_n at_o least_o his_o name_n be_v marvellous_a no_o name_n can_v tell_v what_o he_o be_v he_o can_v say_v arethas_n be_v define_v as_o he_o that_o be_v invisible_a &_o unmeasurable_a and_o he_o see_v he_o sit_v as_o a_o judge_n of_o a_o quiet_a &_o unperturbed_a mind_n not_o move_v with_o affection_n as_o man_n be_v or_o passion_n that_o prejudge_v equity_n these_o be_v far_o from_o the_o lord_n he_o sit_v hear_v all_o cause_n discern_v decree_a and_o work_v all_o after_o his_o own_o most_o holy_a will_n verse_n 3._o and_o he_o that_o sit_v be_v to_o look_v upon_o like_o a_o jasper_n and_o a_o sardine_n stone_n and_o there_o be_v a_o rainbow_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n in_o sight_n like_o unto_o a_o emerald_n appear_v we_o have_v here_o first_o a_o description_n of_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o god_n sit_v on_o his_o throne_n and_o rule_v the_o world_n next_o of_o the_o honourable_a court_n that_o attend_v he_o and_o compass_v his_o throne_n saint_n john_n have_v say_v before_o that_o one_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n this_o doubtless_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o who_o neither_o saint_n john_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n man_n nor_o angel_n can_v speak_v as_o he_o be_v but_o be_v force_v to_o shadow_v he_o unto_o we_o according_a to_o that_o representation_n whereby_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o show_v himself_o bern._n apparet_fw-la deus_fw-la quibus_fw-la vult_fw-la et_fw-la sicuti_fw-la vult_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la sicuti_fw-la est_fw-la god_n appear_v to_o who_o he_o will_v and_o as_o he_o will_v not_o as_o he_o be_v for_o if_o he_o appear_v as_o he_o be_v than_o shall_v he_o appear_v in_o one_o manner_n for_o god_n be_v one_o but_o we_o know_v that_o many_o manner_n of_o way_n have_v he_o be_v represent_v concern_v the_o jasper_n and_o the_o sardine_n diverse_a sardine_n thing_n be_v allege_v by_o the_o interpreter_n jaspidis_fw-la colour_n est_fw-la aquae_fw-la sardii_fw-la ignis_fw-la the_o colour_n of_o the_o jasper_n be_v the_o colour_n of_o water_n the_o colour_n of_o the_o sardine_n be_v the_o colour_n of_o fire_n figure_v two_o great_a judgement_n of_o god_n quorum_fw-la unum_fw-la in_o cataclysmo_fw-la aliud_fw-la apocal._n consummabitur_fw-la per_fw-la ignem_fw-la whereof_o the_o one_o be_v make_v by_o water_n in_o the_o deluge_n the_o other_o shall_v be_v make_v by_o fire_n other_o by_o these_o two_o stone_n understand_v the_o two_o carthusi●…s_n nature_n of_o christ._n jaspis_n viridem_fw-la habet_fw-la colorem_fw-la quae_fw-la supra_fw-la omnes_fw-la colores_fw-la sensus_fw-la maxim_n comfortat_fw-la divinitatem_fw-la notat_fw-la the_o jasper_n have_v a_o green_a colour_n which_o above_o all_o colour_n do_v most_o comfort_n the_o sense_n and_o it_o signify_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ._n sardius_n rubrum_fw-la habet_fw-la colorem_fw-la quia_fw-la humanitas_fw-la rubricata_fw-la fuit_fw-la sanguine_fw-la passionis_fw-la the_o sardine_n have_v a_o red_a colour_n figure_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v make_v red_a and_o bloody_a by_o the_o passion_n hitherto_o agree_v that_o of_o epiphanius_n that_o sardius_n lapidibus_fw-la qui_fw-fr babylonius_n etiam_fw-la dicitur_fw-la rusus_fw-la lapis_fw-la est_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la propemodum_fw-la colorem_fw-la referat_fw-la pellucidus_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-la tumoribus_fw-la et_fw-la vulneribus_fw-la ferro_fw-la inslictis_fw-la medetur_fw-la the_o sardine_n which_o be_v also_o call_v the_o babylonian_a be_v a_o red_a stone_n show_v the_o colour_n of_o blood_n it_o be_v bright_a and_o help_n tumour_n in_o wound_n inflict_v with_o weapon_n of_o iron_n this_o may_v proper_o agree_v to_o christ_n here_o but_o he_o be_v not_o here_o describe_v yet_o there_o be_v some_o who_o will_v have_v the_o whole_a three_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n shadow_v here_o by_o the_o jasper_n quae_fw-la gemmarum_fw-la est_fw-la mater_fw-la which_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o precious_a brightman_n stone_n they_o will_v have_v the_o father_n represent_v by_o the_o sardine_n quae_fw-la carneo_fw-la colore_fw-la rubet_fw-la &_o carneolus_fw-la dicitur_fw-la which_o have_v a_o red_a fleshy_a hue_n the_o son_n be_v represent_v and_o by_o the_o emerald_n the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o these_o be_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o against_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o text._n unto_o they_o we_o add_v with_o other_o divine_n this_o also_o the_o jasper_n be_v a_o precious_a stone_n of_o green_a jasper_n colour_n figure_v his_o eternity_n he_o be_v ever_o lively_a and_o flourish_a without_o fade_v or_o decay_v he_o change_v not_o yea_o no_o shadow_n of_o change_n be_v in_o he_o the_o 16._o heaven_n wax_v old_a as_o a_o garment_n but_o thou_o be_v the_o same_o and_o this_o live_n and_o refresh_v vortue_n he_o communicate_v to_o his_o saint_n he_o keep_v their_o soul_n in_o life_n they_o who_o be_v plant_v in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n 13._o flourish_z in_o their_o old_a day_n he_o renew_v they_o then_o even_o when_o they_o be_v decay_v they_o can_v be_v undo_v by_o death_n who_o by_o grace_n be_v in_o followshippe_n with_o he_o who_o live_v for_o ever_o the_o sardine_n again_o be_v a_o precious_a stone_n of_o a_o red_a sardine_n colour_n represent_v another_o property_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v his_o justice_n in_o regard_n whereof_o he_o be_v unto_o the_o wicked_a a_o consume_a fire_n yet_o the_o 29._o naturalist_n have_v observe_v sardium_fw-la oleo_fw-la hebetari_fw-la sic_fw-la 7._o iustitia_fw-la dei_fw-la per_fw-la misericordiaeoleum_fw-la mitigatur_fw-la that_o the_o sardine_n be_v blunt_v by_o oil_n it_o make_v it_o relent_v of_o the_o redness_n and_o so_o be_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n mitigate_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o his_o mercy_n for_o mercy_n rejoice_v against_o 13._o judgement_n therefore_o
with_o these_o two_o saint_n john_n see_v a_o three_o and_o there_o be_v a_o rainbow_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n rainbow_n like_o a_o bow_a and_o circular_a ●…eeling_n not_o of_o many_o colour_n as_o be_v in_o the_o natural_a rainbow_n which_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n strike_v into_o the_o watery_a cloud_n just_a over_o against_o it_o but_o it_o be_v all_o of_o one_o colour_n like_v unto_o a_o emerald_n which_o be_v also_o a_o precious_a stone_n of_o a_o most_o comfortable_a green_a colour_n hereby_o be_v figure_v that_o our_o god_n be_v always_o mindful_a of_o his_o covenant_n his_o mercy_n endure_v from_o generation_n to_o generation_n over_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o majesty_n the_o stateliness_n of_o his_o throne_n the_o terror_n of_o his_o justice_n shall_v not_o discourage_v we_o for_o we_o be_v under_o the_o covenant_n of_o his_o mercy_n he_o can_v forget_v it_o for_o it_o be_v before_o he_o and_o compass_v his_o throne_n if_o he_o keep_v the_o common_a and_o temporal_a covenant_n eternal_a make_v with_o all_o mankind_n whereof_o the_o rainbow_n be_v a_o sign_n much_o more_o may_v we_o be_v assure_v will_v he_o keep_v his_o special_a and_o eternal_a covenant_n which_o in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o have_v bind_v up_o with_o his_o own_o elect._n 14._o hitherto_o tend_v that_o most_o solemn_a and_o sweet_a asseveration_n of_o the_o lord_n record_v by_o jeremy_n thus_o 36._o say_v the_o lord_n who_o give_v the_o sun_n for_o a_o light_n to_o the_o day_n and_o the_o course_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o of_o the_o star_n for_o a_o light_n to_o the_o night_n who_o break_v the_o sea_n when_o the_o wave_n thereof_o roar_v his_o name_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n if_o these_o ordinance_n depart_v out_o of_o my_o sight_n say_v the_o lord_n then_o shall_v the_o seed_n of_o israel_n cease_v from_o be_v a_o nation_n before_o i_o for_o ever_o it_o be_v a_o proper_a and_o comfortable_a meditation_n of_o rainbow_n that_o worthy_a man_n peter_n martyr_n speak_v of_o the_o military_a bow_n when_o the_o battle_n be_v end_v &_o peace_n be_v make_v you_o shall_v neither_o see_v a_o string_n bend_a on_o the_o bow_n nor_o a_o arrow_n in_o it_o at_o least_o the_o man_n of_o war_n carry_v it_o so_o that_o the_o horn_n thereof_o be_v downward_o to_o the_o earth_n but_o when_o they_o fight_v it_o be_v otherwise_o genes_n than_o they_o bend_v their_o bow_n and_o draw_v the_o horn_n of_o it_o together_o that_o they_o may_v shoot_v arrow_n at_o the_o face_n of_o their_o enemy_n even_o so_o deus_fw-la omnibus_fw-la pacatis_fw-la neruum_fw-la coelest●…_n arcui_fw-la dempsit_fw-la sagittas_fw-la abstulit_fw-la &_o cornua_fw-la eius_fw-la versus_fw-la terram_fw-la deiecit_fw-la the_o lord_n peace_n be_v now_o make_v between_o he_o and_o mankind_n have_v take_v away_o both_o striug_n &_o arrow_n from_o the_o heavenly_a bow_n for_o we_o see_v none_o of_o these_o in_o it_o and_o let_v the_o horn_n of_o his_o bow_n hang_v downward_o to_o the_o earth_n in_o token_n he_o come_v not_o in_o warfare_n against_o man_n but_o walk_v with_o he_o in_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n 31._o however_o it_o be_v we_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o bernard_n tanta_fw-la haec_fw-la formarum_fw-la varietas_fw-la et_fw-la specierum_fw-la numerositas_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la conditis_fw-la quid_fw-la nisi_fw-la radij_fw-la sunt_fw-la deitatis_fw-la monstrantes_fw-la quidem_fw-la quià_fw-la verè_fw-la sit_fw-la à_fw-la quo_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la quid_fw-la sit_fw-la prorsus_fw-la definientes_fw-la itaque_fw-la de_fw-la ipso_fw-la vides_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la ipsum_fw-la this_o numerous_a and_o great_a variety_n of_o form_n and_o kind_n in_o thing_n create_v what_o be_v they_o but_o certain_a beam_n of_o the_o deity_n declare_v that_o in_o very_a truth_n he_o be_v from_o who_o they_o be_v and_o yet_o not_o define_v what_o he_o be_v in_o see_v they_o thou_o see_v somewhat_o of_o his_o but_o not_o himself_o sure_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n here_o dimit_n himself_o to_o our_o capacity_n when_o he_o borrow_v similitude_n from_o these_o stone_n to_o express_v himself_o they_o be_v so_o lord_n far_o inferior_a to_o himself_o as_o the_o small_a creature_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o creator_n for_o whatsoever_o beauty_n these_o stone_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n have_v god_n give_v it_o unto_o they_o how_o then_o shall_v he_o borrow_v beauty_n from_o they_o indeed_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n borrow_v their_o glory_n from_o creature_n and_o when_o they_o be_v most_o rich_o apparel_v they_o be_v great_a beggar_n clothe_v with_o that_o which_o be_v not_o their_o own_o and_o will_v not_o continue_v with_o they_o let_v they_o be_v adorn_v with_o jasper_n sardine_n emerald_n and_o such_o like_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o a_o man_n may_v see_v death_n in_o their_o mortal_a face_n man_n in_o his_o best_a estate_n be_v but_o vanity_n 5._o and_o their_o great_a glory_n be_v but_o grass_n compare_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o god_n and_o here_o also_o we_o be_v warn_v how_o far_o by_o our_o creature_n sin_n we_o have_v fall_v from_o our_o original_a glory_n wherein_o our_o god_n create_v us._n our_o father_n adam_n be_v make_v lord_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o by_o the_o knowledge_n wherewith_o god_n endue_v he_o he_o know_v the_o lord_n &_o the_o creature_n also_o at_o one_o court_n he_o impose_v name_n to_o they_o all_o according_a to_o their_o nature_n the_o knowledge_n which_o he_o have_v of_o god_n lead_v he_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creature_n &_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o creature_n that_o he_o learn_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n but_o now_o man_n be_v send_v to_o the_o school_n of_o the_o creature_n &_o creator_n put_v back_o as_o we_o say_v to_o his_o abc_n to_o learn_v the_o glory_n goodness_n &_o providence_n of_o the_o creator_n by_o look_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v so_o void_a now_o by_o nature_n be_v man_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n that_o he_o can_v conceive_v concern_v god_n that_o which_o he_o the_o creature_n do_v teach_v he_o solomon_n attain_v not_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o adam_n and_o yet_o the_o quick_a naturalist_n come_v short_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o solomon_n they_o write_v of_o the_o jasper_n sardine_n and_o emerald_n but_o because_o we_o know_v they_o not_o as_o they_o be_v therefore_o can_v we_o not_o full_o know_v what_o here_o by_o they_o be_v figure_v unto_o we_o which_o have_v be_v with_o great_a modesty_n observe_v by_o our_o countryman_n p._n forbes_n of_o corse_n verse_n 4._o and_o round_o about_o the_o throne_n be_v four_o and_o twenty_o seat_n and_o upon_o the_o seat_n i_o see_v four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n sit_v clothe_v in_o white_a raiment_n and_o they_o have_v on_o their_o head_n crown_n of_o gold_n we_o have_v hear_v the_o description_n of_o this_o glorious_a court_n king_n creator_n conserver_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n now_o follow_v a_o description_n of_o his_o court_n wherein_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o creature_n some_o in_o who_o he_o rule_v these_o be_v saint_n redeem_v of_o the_o lord_n figure_v here_o by_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n some_o over_o who_o he_o rule_v these_o be_v the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o other_o creature_n therein_o represent_v by_o a_o glassy_a sea_n before_o the_o throne_n for_o his_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o stand_v on_o the_o 2._o glassy_a sea_n some_o in_o who_o and_o by_o who_o he_o rule_v these_o be_v holy_a angel_n whereof_o such_o as_o be_v principal_a be_v figure_v here_o by_o four_o live_a creature_n full_a of_o eye_n before_o and_o behind_o and_o within_z etc._n etc._n book_n i_o be_o not_o to_o darken_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n by_o variety_n of_o interpretation_n and_o to_o make_v contradiction_n to_o such_o as_o deserve_v it_o here_o be_v a_o tedious_a labour_n this_o one_o thing_n seem_v most_o strange_a to_o any_o that_o consider_v the_o text_n and_o seek_v light_a to_o expound_v it_o out_o of_o itself_o how_o man_n shall_v have_v be_v miscarry_v to_o expound_v these_o four_o &_o twenty_o elder_n of_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n cotterius_n bring_v his_o warrant_n from_o jerome_n haec_fw-la inquit_fw-la est_fw-la antiquissima_fw-la fides_fw-la ut_fw-la videre_fw-la galeato_fw-la est_fw-la apud_fw-la hieronymum_n this_o say_v he_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a faith_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o jerome_n he_o may_v also_o have_v say_v more_o that_o jerome_n borrow_v this_o interpretation_n from_o victorine_n a_o hundred_o year_n before_o jerome_n and_o jerome_n also_o write_v the_o prologue_n before_o victorines_n commentary_n on_o this_o book_n out_o of_o it_o it_o be_v like_a that_o jerome_n borrow_v this_o exposition_n from_o victorine_n thus_o cotterius_n may_v have_v make_v this_o opinion_n
have_v reveil_v out_o of_o this_o book_n to_o my_o saint_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o rage_n of_o man_n shall_v turn_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n 10._o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v glory_n his_o church_n victory_n and_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o shame_n and_o confusion_n three_o thing_n have_v we_o in_o this_o chapter_n first_o a_o description_n chapter_n of_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n second_o a_o description_n of_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n who_o open_v it_o three_o thanks_n give_v for_o it_o both_o of_o man_n and_o angel_n and_o i_o see_v we_o may_v perceive_v here_o in_o increase_v the_o entry_n how_o new_a sight_n and_o new_a revelation_n be_v multiply_v upon_o saint_n john_n the_o lord_n begin_v to_o be_v familiar_a with_o he_o and_o still_o he_o continue_v for_o who_o he_o love_v he_o love_v to_o the_o end_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o increase_v with_o the_o increasing_n of_o god_n like_o the_o sun_n ascend_v to_o the_o noontide_n of_o the_o day_n balaam_n and_o balac_n both_o may_v conspire_v 22._o to_o curse_n israel_n but_o it_o can_v be_v putiphar_n may_v imprison_v joseph_n but_o god_n shall_v be_v with_o he_o 9_o domitian_n may_v banish_v s._n john_n unto_o pathmos_n from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o man_n but_o not_o from_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n even_o there_o shall_v the_o lord_n be_v familiar_a with_o he_o what_o isaac_n speak_v of_o jacob_n stand_v as_o a_o sure_a decree_n to_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n i_o have_v bless_v he_o 33._o and_o he_o shall_v be_v bless_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o sight_n we_o have_v speak_v say_v once_o for_o all_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n no_o doubt_v many_o of_o the_o lord_n dear_a child_n wish_v they_o can_v see_v the_o like_a such_o a_o sight_n as_o s._n john_n see_v or_o s._n paul_n see_v when_o he_o be_v ravish_v into_o the_o three_o heaven_n the_o one_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o see_v for_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v show_v it_o to_o the_o church_n the_o other_o tell_v not_o what_o he_o see_v yea_o profess_v that_o the_o sight_n he_o see_v be_v more_o than_o ever_o man_n hear_v or_o see_v or_o man_n his_o heart_n be_v able_a to_o understand_v and_o this_o be_v to_o provoke_v we_o to_o long_o for_o that_o day_n wherein_o we_o shall_v be_v capable_a of_o this_o sight_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n if_o we_o see_v not_o such_o sight_n as_o they_o see_v let_v we_o reverence_v the_o lord_n dispensation_n now_o we_o walk_v by_o faith_n not_o by_o sight_n the_o time_n when_o 7._o we_o shall_v see_v be_v come_v now_o happy_a be_v we_o if_o we_o do_v believe_v a_o book_n we_o must_v still_o remember_v that_o in_o all_o book_n this_o prophecy_n the_o lord_n dimit_n himself_o to_o use_v such_o form_n and_o representation_n as_o we_o be_v best_a able_a to_o conceive_v proper_o god_n have_v no_o book_n ●…e_o need_v not_o any_o such_o help_n of_o memory_n but_o allusion_n here_o be_v make_v to_o king_n who_o have_v beside_o they_o book_n contain_v law_n whereby_o they_o rule_v their_o people_n or_o else_o the_o ancient_a act_n and_o monument_n register_n of_o their_o kingdom_n as_o be_v that_o book_n out_o of_o which_o ahasuerus_n learn_v what_o good_a service_n mordecai_n have_v do_v unto_o he_o the_o lord_n have_v his_o book_n also_o but_o far_o exceed_v they_o for_o they_o have_v only_o a_o register_n of_o thing_n which'are_v do_v they_o can_v tell_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o far_o less_o can_v they_o prevent_v it_o but_o the_o lord_n have_v in_o his_o book_n a_o perfect_a record_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n they_o be_v all_o appoint_v by_o himself_o now_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o book_n be_v not_o agree_v testament_n upon_o by_o the_o interpreter_n victorine_n who_o many_o follow_v call_v it_o the_o old_a testament_n other_o more_z general_o the_o whole_a scripture_n but_o be_v not_o that_o book_n open_v till_o now_o and_o be_v it_o not_o plain_o tell_v saint_n john_n by_o the_o angel_n that_o the_o thing_n foretell_v in_o this_o book_n be_v such_o as_o be_v short_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v not_o such_o as_o have_v be_v do_v before_o what_o cotterius_n have_v for_o he_o by_o this_o book_n to_o book_n understand_v vitam_fw-la life_n and_o by_o the_o strong_a angel_n to_o understand_v legem_fw-la or_o the_o law_n which_o none_o can_v fulfil_v we_o leave_v it_o to_o himself_o and_o his_o opinion_n also_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o plain_a out_o of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o text_n that_o it_o be_v strange_a man_n will_v not_o take_v light_a out_o of_o god_n hand_n when_o he_o offer_v it_o unto_o they_o for_o do_v not_o the_o son●…_n take_v this_o book_n from_o the_o father_n do_v he_o not_o open_v the_o seal_v thereof_o and_o let_v saint_n john_n see_v what_o be_v write_v in_o it_o be_v it_o not_o the_o revelation_n very_a first_o and_o authentic_a volume_n of_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n the_o copy_n and_o transumpt_v whereof_o saint_n john_n draw_v out_o as_o he_o be_v command_v and_o send_v it_o to_o the_o church_n all_o the_o whole_a circumstance_n of_o the_o prophecy_n make_v it_o so_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v strange_a how_o man_n too_o much_o enamour_v with_o their_o own_o conception_n shall_v not_o have_v perceive_v it_o but_o because_o in_o holy_a scripture_n often_o mention_n sort_n occur_v of_o sundry_a book_n which_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n let_v we_o once_o for_o all_o remember_v they_o be_v to_o be_v reduce_v to_o one_o of_o these_o two_o sort_n they_o be_v either_o special_a metaphorical_a or_o material_a the_o first_o so_o call_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o metaphor_n or_o borrow_a speech_n the_o other_o so_o call_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n the_o metaphorike_n book_n be_v either_o universal_a or_o special_a universal_a be_v two_o one_o mention_v by_o david_n 16._o in_o thy_o book_n be_v all_o thing_n write_v which_o in_o continuance_n of_o time_n be_v fashion_v and_o this_o book_n be_v the_o most_o large_a as_o be_v a_o perfect_a register_n of_o all_o thing_n all_o person_n of_o all_o time_n and_o this_o be_v the_o book_n of_o two_o prescience_n the_o other_o be_v the_o book_n of_o conscience_n which_o albeit_o it_o be_v not_o so_o large_a as_o the_o first_o yet_o i_o call_v it_o universal_a because_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n have_v it_o they_o write_v it_o with_o their_o own_o hand_n &_o have_v it_o in_o their_o own_o custody_n and_o therefore_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o testimony_n thereof_o special_a book_n again_o be_v also_o two_o one_o 16._o call_v by_o moses_n the_o book_n of_o life_n contain_v a_o roll_n of_o all_o god_n elect_n the_o other_o call_v by_o malachy_n a_o book_n of_o remembrance_n wherein_o the_o lord_n register_n the_o word_n and_o work_n of_o the_o wicked_a this_o book_n god_n have_v in_o his_o keep_n and_o it_o be_v every_o way_n conform_v and_o vary_v not_o from_o the_o book_n of_o conscience_n that_o the_o wicked_a have_v the_o book_n material_a material_a be_v the_o bible_n whereof_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v a_o part_n s._n john_n see_v it_o first_o here_o in_o this_o vision_n and_o then_o as_o i_o say_v extract_v the_o just_a copy_n of_o it_o and_o send_v it_o to_o the_o church_n write_a within_o and_o without_o for_o understand_v we_o of_o this_o we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o form_n of_o book_n they_o use_v of_o old_a be_v not_o like_o we_o they_o be_v long_a roll_n every_o sheet_n at_o the_o end_n of_o another_o extend_v in_o length_n fold_v and_o roll_v up_o about_o a_o piece_n of_o tree_n or_o some_o other_o such_o thing_n they_o may_v convenient_o be_v distinguish_v by_o seal_n for_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o first_o be_v open_v all_o write_v in_o it_o may_v easy_o have_v be_v read_v the_o rest_n not_o so_o until_o the_o remain_a seal_n be_v open_v also_o they_o be_v common_o write_v on_o the_o one_o side_n except_o where_o the_o abundance_n of_o matter_n force_v they_o to_o write_v on_o the_o back_n then_o be_v they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o six_o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v that_o epist_n the_o heaven_n pass_v away_o like_o a_o scroll_n for_o a_o scroll_n of_o parchment_n be_v open_v and_o spread_v out_o in_o length_n if_o it_o be_v let_v go_v by_o he_o that_o hold_v it_o return_v speedy_o into_o a_o round_a again_o ezekiel_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o like_a roll_n of_o a_o book_n spread_v before_o he_o write_v within_o and_o without_o and_o as_o to_o ezekiel_n the_o 9_o lord_n present_v a_o roll_n contain_v that_o which_o
the_o lord_n replenish_v they_o with_o his_o new_a consolation_n they_o go_v weep_v and_o 6._o carry_v precious_a seed_n but_o they_o shall_v return_v with_o joy_n end_n bring_v their_o sheaf_n the_o matter_n of_o his_o comfort_n be_v take_v from_o creature_n christ_n so_o long_o as_o he_o look_v to_o the_o creature_n he_o find_v nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o mourning_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v with_o all_o they_o who_o seek_v comfort_n in_o the_o creature_n as_o it_o be_v with_o that_o woman_n disease_v of_o the_o bloody_a issue_n she_o spend_v all_o that_o she_o have_v on_o the_o physician_n but_o in_o vain_a she_o be_v never_o heal_v of_o her_o disease_n till_o she_o come_v to_o christ._n and_o here_o we_o have_v christ_n two_o way_n describe_v scripture_n first_o as_o saint_n john_n hear_v of_o he_o second_o as_o he_o see_v he_o the_o elder_n who_o describe_v he_o speak_v of_o christ_n out_o of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n so_o do_v all_o they_o who_o speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nec_fw-la ipsi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d quidem_fw-la apostoli_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la quicquam_fw-la quod_fw-la inducerent_fw-la eligerunt_fw-la yea_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o take_v not_o this_o liberty_n to_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n anything_o of_o their_o own_o but_o as_o they_o receive_v from_o christ_n so_o they_o deliver_v to_o us._n hic_fw-la primum_fw-la per_fw-la prophetas_fw-la 2._o deinde_fw-la per_fw-la s●…ipsum_fw-la postea_fw-la per_fw-la apostolos_fw-la quantum_fw-la satis_fw-la esse_fw-la i●…dicavit_fw-la locutus_fw-la est_fw-la and_o christ_n jesus_n first_o by_o his_o prophet_n next_o by_o himself_o last_o by_o his_o apostle_n have_v speak_v as_o much_o as_o he_o think_v to_o be_v sufficient_a so_o that_o now_o non_fw-la relictus_fw-la est_fw-la hominum_fw-la ●…om_n eloquiis_fw-la de_fw-la dei_fw-la rebus_fw-la alius_fw-la praeterquam_fw-la dei_fw-la sermo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o other_o speech_n of_o divine_a thing_n leave_v unto_o man_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n let_v no_o man_n be_v wise_a above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v that_o he_o call_v our_o lord_n the_o lion_n which_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n he_o take_v it_o from_o moses_n and_o again_o that_o he_o call_v he_o the_o root_n of_o david_n he_o take_v it_o from_o isaiah_n he_o be_v call_v a_o lion_n to_o the_o terror_n of_o his_o enemy_n lion_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o own_o satan_n be_v call_v also_o by_o saint_n peter_n a_o devour_a lion_n but_o like_o the_o lion_n 8._o which_o samson_n slay_v and_o that_o other_o which_o david_n slay_v and_o pull_v his_o sheep_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n these_o be_v sigure_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o have_v overcome_v the_o devil_n and_o trample_v satan_n under_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o 20._o saint_n it_o be_v a_o fearful_a sight_n at_o the_o first_o which_o joshua_n see_v at_o jericho_n a_o man_n stand_v before_o he_o with_o a_o sword_n in_o his_o hand_n but_o when_o joshua_n demand_v be_v thou_o on_o our_o side_n or_o against_o we_o and_o receive_v 10._o this_o answer_n as_o a_o captain_n of_o the_o lord_n host_n i_o be_o now_o come_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n it_o do_v great_o confirm_v he_o and_o here_o at_o the_o first_o it_o may_v seem_v fearful_a that_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o lion_n but_o mark_v that_o in_o the_o lamb_n next_o verse_n he_o be_v call_v a_o lamb_n a_o lion_n he_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o enemy_n to_o vanquish_v they_o &_o tear_v they_o in_o piece_n a_o lamb_n he_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o me●…knesse_n patience_n and_o willingness_n to_o suffer_v for_o his_o own_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o simple_o call_v a_o lion_n but_o a_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n naturallist_n have_v observe_v that_o lion_n be_v not_o cruel_a against_o their_o own_o kind_n yea_o they_o spare_v beast_n of_o another_o kind_n that_o subject_n themselves_o unto_o they_o if_o we_o be_v the_o true_a israelite_n of_o god_n and_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o the_o lion_n of_o juda_n his_o tribe_n shall_v not_o be_v terrible_a unto_o we_o the_o great_a his_o power_n be_v the_o great_a shall_v be_v our_o comfort_n the_o other_o stile_n give_v unto_o he_o be_v the_o root_n of_o david_n david_n where_o it_o come_v to_o be_v consider_v how_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o root_n of_o david_n since_o by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n he_o be_v call_v a_o graft_n or_o branch_n 10._o spring_v out_o of_o the_o root_n of_o jesse_n yea_o there_o in_o one_o chapter_n the_o messia_n be_v call_v the_o root_n of_o jesse_n and_o messia_n jesse_n again_o the_o root_n of_o the_o messia_n but_o this_o be_v in_o different_a respect_n he_o be_v a_o branch_n spring_v out_o of_o the_o stock_n of_o jesse_n for_o from_o he_o he_o take_v his_o humane_a nature_n and_o he_o be_v also_o a_o stock_n into_o the_o which_o jesse_n and_o all_o his_o father_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n have_v their_o be_v as_o man_n he_o take_v his_o flesh_n from_o they_o as_o god_n he_o give_v they_o their_o be_v this_o be_v the_o question_n which_o our_o saviour_n demand_v of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o they_o can_v not_o answer_v how_o the_o messia_n can_v be_v david_n his_o son_n and_o also_o david_n his_o lord_n 1._o the_o lord_n say_v to_o my_o lord_n sit_v at_o my_o right_a hand_n until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o foot_n stool_n for_o as_o man_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n and_o so_o be_v the_o branch_n but_o as_o god_n he_o be_v david_n his_o lord_n and_o so_o be_v the_o root_n and_o that_o our_o lord_n be_v make_v man_n of_o the_o seed_n sinful_a of_o david_n be_v most_o comfortable_a for_o we_o he_o may_v have_v create_v a_o new_a nature_n which_o have_v never_o sin_v but_o now_o he_o have_v assume_v the_o nature_n that_o be_v once_o sinful_a and_o have_v full_o separate_v it_o from_o sin_n to_o join_v it_o in_o a_o personal_a and_o eternal_a union_n with_o his_o own_o divine_a nature_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o overshadow_a the_o virgin_n can_v very_o well_o discern_v between_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n and_o the_o sinful_a corruption_n of_o that_o seed_n he_o take_v the_o seed_n without_o the_o sin_n and_o of_o it_o form_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n and_o therefore_o theod●…ret_a bring_v in_o fla●…anus_n expound_v the_o angel_n word_n to_o mary_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n non_fw-la cogite_n corporalem_fw-la 26._o contactum_fw-la nec_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la coni●…galem_fw-la expecta_fw-la nam_fw-la tuus_fw-la fabricator_n templum_fw-la suum_fw-la corporeum_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la te_fw-la nascetur_fw-la fabricabit_fw-la think_v not_o of_o any_o corporal_a touch_v look_v not_o for_o any_o carnal_a conjunction_n he_o that_o make_v thou_o will_v make_v to_o himself_o a_o bodily_a temple_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o shall_v serve_v sin_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o he_o who_o have_v assume_v our_o nature_n and_o sanctify_v it_o full_o from_o all_o sin_n that_o it_o may_v be_v unite_v to_o himself_o shall_v in_o his_o own_o good_a time_n free_v our_o nature_n from_o all_o corruption_n of_o sin_n and_o present_v we_o without_o spot_n or_o blame_v to_o his_o father_n that_o we_o 27._o may_v live_v a_o happy_a life_n in_o holy_a fellowship_n and_o communion_n for_o ever_o with_o he_o the_o papist_n not_o understand_v this_o doctrine_n sin_n spoil_v we_o of_o this_o comfort_n in_o affirm_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n of_o who_o our_o lord_n take_v our_o nature_n be_v without_o sin_n a_o false_a doctrine_n unknown_a to_o antiquity_n it_o begin_v in_o the_o day_n of_o bernard_n he_o cry_v out_o against_o it_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o lion_n as_o against_o a_o novelty_n a_o temeritie_n and_o a_o superstition_n lubenter_fw-la gloriosa_fw-la virgo_fw-la tal●…_n carebit_fw-la honore_fw-la 174._o the_o bless_a and_o glorious_a virgin_n willing_o will_v want_v such_o a_o honour_n as_o this_o solus_fw-la enim_fw-la dominus_fw-la ibid._n jesus_n de_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la conceptus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la et_fw-la solus_fw-la ant●…conceptum_fw-la sanctus_fw-la quo_fw-la excepto_fw-la de_fw-la c●…tero_fw-la universos_fw-la respicit_fw-la ex_fw-la adam_n natos_fw-la quod_fw-la unus_fw-la humiliter_fw-la de_fw-la seipso_fw-la u●…raciter_fw-la consitetur_fw-la in_o miquitatibus_fw-la inquiens_fw-la conceptus_fw-la antiquity_n sum_fw-la &_o in_o peccatis_fw-la concepit_fw-la i_o mater_fw-la mea_fw-la for_o only_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o he_o also_o only_o before_o conception_n be_v holy_a he_o be_v except_v that_o pertain_v to_o all_o who_o be_v bear_v of_o adam_n which_o one_o of_o they_o humble_o and_o true_o confess_v of_o himself_o say_v i_o be_v bear_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n my_o mother_n 5._o have_v conceive_v i_o solus_fw-la christus_fw-la dicere_fw-la potuit_fw-la ecce_fw-la princeps_fw-la
a_o sovereign_a preservative_n against_o all_o poison_n the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n as_o they_o record_v attend_v till_o the_o unicorn_n dip_v his_o horn_n in_o the_o water_n then_o come_v they_o and_o drink_v proper_o therefore_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n express_v by_o the_o unicorn_n horn_n of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o firm_a and_o durable_a the_o most_o beautiful_a the_o most_o profitable_a he_o have_v change_v the_o bitter_a water_n of_o marah_n and_o make_v they_o sweet_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n so_o deadly_a which_o his_o horn_n heal_v not_o and_o make_v it_o to_o serve_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o own_o and_o seven_o eye_n as_o in_o his_o seven_o horn_n his_o wisdom_n complete_a power_n be_v signify_v so_o in_o his_o seven_o eye_n his_o complete_a wisdom_n these_o two_o do_v great_o commend_v the_o royal_a authority_n of_o our_o king_n he_o be_v wise_a and_o will_v do_v nothing_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o for_o he_o see_v all_o and_o know_v perfect_o the_o quality_n of_o every_o creature_n &_o the_o estate_n of_o every_o cause_n again_o he_o be_v strong_a and_o able_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n his_o eye_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n eye_n of_o providence_n child_n and_o eye_n of_o grace_n by_o his_o eye_n of_o providence_n he_o look_v unto_o all_o thing_n and_o there_o be_v no_o place_n nor_o people_n in_o the_o world_n to_o who_o these_o eye_n be_v not_o extend_v but_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o grace_n he_o look_v to_o his_o own_o as_o he_o do_v to_o jerusalem_n restore_v and_o send_v they_o this_o blessing_n grace_n grace_n be_v 7._o unto_o it_o and_o herein_o have_v the_o lord_n magnify_v his_o mercy_n towards_o we_o above_o many_o other_o more_o mighty_a kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n that_o where_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o providence_n he_o look_v unto_o the_o rest_n he_o have_v cast_v the_o eye_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o grace_n upon_o we_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o deal_v so_o with_o every_o nation_n 20._o yet_o more_o plain_o in_o the_o text_n these_o seven_o 34._o eye_n be_v expound_v to_o be_v the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n send_v forth_o into_o all_o the_o earth_n seven_o be_v the_o number_n of_o perfection_n note_v that_o fullness_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o the_o lamb_n for_o he_o receive_v not_o the_o spirit_n by_o measure_n and_o what_o he_o have_v receive_v he_o retain_v not_o to_o himself_o but_o as_o here_o be_v say_v he_o send_v it_o out_o that_o of_o his_o fullness_n we_o may_v all_o receive_v grace_n for_o grace_n and_o hereof_o come_v the_o continuance_n and_o heaven_n conservation_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n because_o it_o be_v continual_o furnish_v with_o grace_n from_o the_o lamb_n he_o have_v the_o seven_o star_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o hold_v they_o out_o to_o such_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o please_v he_o he_o furnish_v grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o his_o servant_n the_o preacher_n according_a to_o the_o time_n 16._o wherein_o they_o live_v yea_o and_o to_o every_o one_o of_o his_o saint_n in_o particular_a this_o same_o lord_n who_o once_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n send_v down_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o a_o visible_a manner_n upon_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o fiery_a cleave_a tongue_n do_v daily_o send_v he_o from_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n in_o a_o invisible_a manner_n and_o this_o be_v proper_o figure_v in_o a_o vision_n to_o zacharie_n wherein_o he_o see_v a_o golden_a candles●…lcke_n candlestick_n with_o seven_o lamp_n every_o lamp_n have_v a_o several_a pipe_n through_o the_o which_o oil_n for_o entertainment_n of_o the_o light_n in_o every_o lamp_n be_v convey_v from_o the_o two_o olive_n which_o stand_v before_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n let_v therefore_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n rage_n as_o they_o list_v let_v they_o labour_v what_o they_o can_v to_o put_v out_o the_o light_n of_o the_o candlestick_n yea_o let_v they_o presume_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o root_v out_o the_o very_a name_n of_o israel_n from_o under_o 4._o heaven_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v for_o the_o stability_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n with_o light_n and_o grace_n in_o it_o stand_v in_o this_o that_o it_o be_v furnish_v from_o heaven_n the_o eye_n of_o the_o lamb_n look_v on_o his_o saint_n and_o he_o send_v down_o his_o spirit_n upon_o they_o and_o from_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n the_o oil_n of_o grace_n be_v by_o secret_a pipe_n and_o conduit_n convey_v to_o his_o candlestick_n on_o earth_n and_o who_o be_v able_a to_o interrupt_v the_o course_n thereof_o verse_n 7._o and_o he_o come_v and_o take_v the_o book_n out_o of_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n here_o in_o effect_n no_o other_o thing_n be_v represent_v then_o that_o which_o be_v open_o proclaim_v from_o heaven_n first_o at_o jordan_n next_o upon_o mount_n tab●…_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v he_o for_o by_o this_o type_n the_o lord_n jesus_n church_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o only_a doctor_n of_o his_o church_n who_o receive_v the_o book_n from_o the_o father_n and_o out_o of_o it_o reveal_v to_o his_o church_n the_o counsel_n of_o god_n which_o neither_o angel_n nor_o man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v as_o moses_n go_v up_o to_o the_o mount_n and_o receive_v 17._o 32._o the_o table_n of_o the_o law_n and_o give_v they_o to_o israel_n so_o our_o mediator_n who_o come_v from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n have_v bring_v down_o to_o we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o will._n let_v we_o not_o presume_v to_o go_v up_o to_o the_o mountain_n to_o inquire_v any_o thing_n which_o our_o moses_n have_v not_o teach_v we_o leave_v we_o die_v let_v we_o remember_v our_o place_n and_o stand_v low_a we_o be_v disciple_n bind_v by_o divine_a proclamation_n to_o hear_v he_o who_o the_o father_n have_v send_v unto_o we_o if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v verse_n 8._o and_o when_o he_o have_v take_v the_o book_n the_o four_o live_a creature_n and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n have_v every_o one_o harp_n &_o golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n which_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n now_o follow_v the_o three_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n thanksgiving_n contain_v a_o threefold_a thanksgiving_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o revelation_n the_o first_o song_n be_v sing_v by_o angel_n and_o redeem_v saint_n coniunct_o in_o angel_n the_o eight_o nine_o and_o ten_o verse_n the_o second_o be_v sing_v by_o angel_n several_o in_o the_o eleven_o and_o redeem_v twelve_o verse_n the_o three_o by_o all_o creature_n in_o their_o kind_n in_o the_o thirteen_o verse_n whereunto_o angel_n creature_n again_o and_o redeem_v saint_n say_v amen_n in_o the_o last_o verse_n cotterius_n confess_v that_o this_o place_n do_v trouble_v he_o great_o and_o no_o marvel_n for_o the_o four_o beast_n he_o expound_v to_o be_v veritas_fw-la euangelit_fw-la quadri●…ormis_fw-la the_o fourfold_a verity_n of_o the_o gospel_n no_o marvel_n book_n therefore_o as_o i_o have_v say_v that_o both_o he_o and_o other_o who_o expound_v the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n to_o be_v four_o and_o twenty_o book_n find_v themselves_o strait_v with_o this_o place_n wherein_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n plain_o expound_v himself_o that_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n be_v they_o who_o god_n have_v redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n out_o of_o every_o kindred_n tongue_n people_n and_o nation_n but_o leave_v they_o this_o come_v here_o first_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o as_o before_o they_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v he_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n so_o now_o they_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v the_o lamb_n saint_n paul_n use_v this_o as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n jesus_n take_v out_o of_o the_o 97._o psalm_n consider_v how_o great_a be_v he_o of_o who_o it_o 5._o be_v say_v let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n worship_v he_o let_v heretic_n therefore_o be_v silent_a since_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n redeem_v worship_v he_o as_o god._n in_o this_o thanksgiving_n these_o four_o circumstance_n angel_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v first_o who_o be_v the_o musician_n that_o sing_v next_o with_o what_o gesture_n three_o what_o be_v their_o musical_a instrument_n and_o last_o what_o be_v their_o song_n the_o musician_n be_v four_o live_a creature_n represent_v beast_n the_o principal_a order_n of_o angel_n near_o unto_o the_o throne_n and_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o company_n of_o saint_n redeem_v by_o nature_n angel_n and_o man_n be_v at_o
variance_n for_o man_n have_v become_v by_o sin_n a_o enemy_n unto_o god_n have_v the_o angel_n enemy_n unto_o he_o a_o figure_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o that_o angel_n 24._o who_o stand_v with_o a_o sword_n in_o the_o entry_n of_o paradise_n song_n to_o hold_v adam_n out_o of_o it_o but_o now_o man_n be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o jesus_n angel_n be_v also_o reconcile_v with_o man_n for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n to_o set_v at_o 20._o peace_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n both_o the_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o the_o thing_n in_o heaven_n so_o that_o now_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o harmony_n to_o praise_v the_o lord_n yea_o strange_a it_o be_v that_o they_o who_o before_o be_v figure_v by_o lion_n bullock_n eagle_n and_o man_n be_v now_o bring_v in_o sing_v one_o song_n this_o be_v to_o magnify_v concord_n the_o effectual_a virtue_n of_o the_o redeemer_n who_o have_v reconcile_v god_n and_o man_n angel_n and_o man_n yea_o man_n with_o man_n so_o that_o most_o sierce_a and_o barbarous_a nature_n be_v now_o make_v peaceable_a meek_a and_o love_a one_o to_o another_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o be_v foretell_v by_o isaiah_n of_o the_o 6._o kingdom_n of_o the_o messia_n the_o wolse_o shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n the_o leopard_n shall_v lie_v with_o the_o kid_n the_o calf_n and_o the_o lion_n shall_v feed_v together_o therefore_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n speak_v of_o christ_n jesus_n g●…es_fw-la call_v he_o nowm_fw-la quendam_fw-la citharaedum_fw-la what_o the_o grecian_n speak_v of_o their_o orpheus_n that_o by_o the_o sweet_a harmony_n of_o his_o music_n he_o do_v mitigate_v and_o tame_v the_o most_o wild_a and_o furious_a beast_n be_v only_o and_o in_o truth_n do_v by_o our_o christ_n solus_fw-la ipse_fw-la feras_fw-la mansuefacit_fw-la for_o wild_a beast_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v tame_v by_o he_o volucres_fw-la fly_v fowl_n that_o be_v wicked_a man_n carry_v aloft_o upon_o the_o wing_n of_o vanity_n they_o he_o make_v solid_a and_o establish_v their_o heart_n by_o grace_n serpent_n creep_v thing_n figure_v deceiver_n with_o their_o subtle_a wile_n they_o he_o make_v upright_o he_o tame_v leones_n &_o lupos_fw-la lion_n &_o raven_a wolf_n cruel_a and_o bloody_a man_n he_o turn_v into_o meek_a and_o merciful_a man_n such_o a_o raven_a wolf_n be_v s._n paul_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n but_o christ_n jesus_n of_o a_o persecuter_n convert_v he_o to_o a_o preacher_n yea_o lapides_fw-la et_fw-la ligna_fw-la such_o as_o worship_v stock_n and_o stone_n and_o have_v no_o more_o spiritual_a life_n in_o they_o then_o stone_n have_v have_v he_o raise_v quicken_v and_o make_v they_o child_n to_o abraham_n what_o then_o shall_v we_o say_v peace_n of_o these_o man_n who_o for_o small_a offence_n by_o no_o mean_n can_v be_v reconcile_v to_o their_o brethren_n sure_o they_o be_v yet_o stranger_n from_o this_o grace_n in_o conceit_n they_o fly_v high_a than_o angel_n in_o stubbornness_n hard_o than_o stone_n in_o fierceness_n of_o nature_n more_o barbarous_a than_o beast_n be_v they_o who_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o jesus_n be_v not_o tame_v and_o make_v love_v to_o their_o brethren_n the_o second_o circumstance_n be_v their_o gesture_n in_o john_n worship_v note_v in_o these_o word_n they_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n for_o still_o saint_n john_n speak_v of_o these_o thing_n as_o they_o appear_v to_o he_o in_o the_o vision_n always_o by_o their_o example_n they_o learn_v we_o with_o humble_a heart_n and_o body_n to_o praise_v the_o lord_n which_o as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n whereunto_o we_o be_v bind_v for_o 20._o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n therefore_o glorify_v god_n in_o your_o body_n and_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v god_n so_o it_o render_v to_o ourselves_o very_o great_a comfort_n for_o the_o time_n be_v at_o hand_n wherein_o our_o body_n must_v be_v commit_v to_o the_o grave_n than_o the_o tongue_n will_v be_v silence_v the_o eye_n close_v and_o no_o member_n of_o the_o body_n will_v be_v able_a to_o do_v as_o now_o it_o may_v so_o long_o therefore_o as_o we_o have_v the_o use_n of_o they_o let_v we_o make_v they_o weapon_n of_o righteousness_n for_o the_o service_n 6._o of_o our_o god_n let_v the_o eye_n mourn_v for_o sin_n and_o do_v look_v up_o for_o mercy_n let_v the_o hand_n be_v lift_v up_o as_o a_o evening_n sacrifice_n let_v the_o tongue_n speak_v to_o his_o praise_n let_v the_o knee_n bow_v unto_o he_o that_o make_v they_o thus_o if_o we_o use_v they_o so_o long_o as_o we_o have_v they_o to_o his_o honour_n we_o may_v rest_v assure_v that_o he_o will_v honour_v they_o since_o his_o promise_n be_v i_o will_v honour_v they_o that_o honour_n 30._o i_o even_o in_o the_o grave_n shall_v the_o lord_n watch_n over_o they_o to_o keep_v the_o very_a dust_n of_o they_o and_o howsoever_o the_o body_n be_v sow_v in_o dishonour_n yet_o shall_v it_o 43._o be_v raise_v in_o glory_n it_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o he_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o restore_v and_o re-edify_v it_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o jesus_n from_o the_o 11._o dead_a dwell_v in_o you_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o christ_n from_o the_o dead_a shall_v also_o quicken_v your_o mortal_a body_n because_o that_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o you_o the_o three_o circumstance_n be_v of_o the_o instrument_n vial_n which_o they_o use_v in_o his_o praise_n it_o be_v say_v every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v harp_n and_o golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n none_o of_o they_o want_v every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v it_o content_v they_o not_o that_o their_o companion_n praise_n god_n beside_o they_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v their_o own_o harp_n and_o praise_n god_n for_o themselves_o let_v we_o learn_v of_o they_o how_o we_o shall_v behave_v ourselves_o in_o the_o assembly_n of_o saint_n under_o the_o law_n no_o man_n may_v appear_v empty_a before_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v now_o a_o great_a sin_n under_o the_o gospel_n to_o come_v to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o no_o sacrifice_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o offer_v unto_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n to_o our_o like_a self_n the_o lord_n know_v his_o own_o israelites_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o guile_n when_o they_o sacrifice_v than_o he_o smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n hypocrite_n he_o know_v also_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o sacrificer_n but_o offer_v no_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o lord_n they_o may_v mask_v themselves_o 1._o but_o the_o lord_n can_v be_v deceive_v for_o he_o know_v 21._o they_o as_o they_o be_v and_o will_v deal_v with_o they_o as_o they_o deal_v with_o he_o with_o the_o upright_o thou_o will_v show_v 18._o thyself_o upright_o and_o the_o lord_n will_v do_v well_o to_o those_o that_o be_v good_a and_o true_a in_o their_o heart_n but_o those_o that_o 5._o turn_v aside_o by_o their_o crooked_a way_n the_o lord_n will_v lead_v with_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n their_o harp_n note_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o great_a thing_n joy_n they_o have_v in_o praise_v god._n there_o be_v no_o joy_n on_o earth_n comparable_a to_o that_o which_o be_v find_v god_n in_o the_o praise_v of_o god_n and_o pray_v unto_o he_o when_o our_o saviour_n pray_v then_o be_v his_o countenance_n change_v when_o david_n play_v upon_o 17._o the_o harp_n the_o evil_a spirit_n that_o trouble_a saul_n depart_v 23._o from_o he_o and_o when_o we_o get_v heart_n to_o pray_v or_o praise_v the_o lord_n do_v we_o not_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o then_o our_o trouble_n be_v mitigate_v our_o perturbation_n pacify_v then_o satan_n be_v confound_v and_o we_o ourselves_o be_v comfort_v these_o be_v the_o sweet_a effect_n of_o the_o soul_n harp_v unto_o god_n again_o it_o note_v the_o sweet_a harmony_n and_o consent_n 1._o that_o be_v among_o they_o they_o be_v many_o and_o have_v several_a harp_n but_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o sound_n and_o song_n o_o how_o good_a and_o how_o comely_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o brethren_n to_o dwell_v together_o o_o how_o great_a be_v the_o glory_n of_o saint_n when_o they_o all_o speak_v one_o thing_n and_o all_o mind_n one_o thing_n this_o be_v the_o happiness_n of_o the_o primitive_a 1._o church_n the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n but_o short_o after_o be_v they_o divide_v by_o a_o unnecessary_a 1._o schism_n some_o say_v i_o be_o paul_n and_o some_o i_o be_o apollo_n the_o like_a preposterous_a zeal_n make_v a_o great_a distemperature_n and_o discordant_a sound_n in_o many_o professor_n of_o our_o time_n without_o any_o cause_n the_o evil_n be_v more_o than_o we_o can_v mend_v at_o least_o let_v we_o faith_n mourn_v for_o it_o and_o pray_v
thy_o will_n o_o lord_n be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o let_v every_o man_n take_v heed_n unto_o himself_o he_o be_v a_o sacrilegious_a renter_fw-la of_o the_o church_n who_o break_v the_o bond_n of_o love_n with_o his_o brother_n in_o who_o he_o see_v no_o rupture_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n but_o for_o our_o further_a instruction_n let_v we_o know_v that_o heart_n the_o harp_n of_o a_o christian_a wherewith_o he_o praise_v god_n be_v his_o heart_n the_o string_n of_o the_o harp_n be_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o must_v be_v well_o tune_v and_o prepare_v before_o they_o can_v make_v any_o melody_n to_o the_o lord_n my_o heart_n be_v prepare_v and_o i_o will_v sing_v 57_o say_v david_n then_o be_v the_o heart_n like_v unto_o a_o ten_o string_a law_n instrument_n when_o it_o be_v incline_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n his_o ten_o commandment_n for_o as_o a_o musical_a instrument_n make_v no_o pleasant_a complete_a sound_n if_o any_o string_n thereof_o be_v break_v so_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n if_o it_o be_v possess_v and_o thrall_v with_o any_o vice_n can_v right_o praise_v the_o lord_n the_o truth_n be_v we_o can_v keep_v no_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n as_o we_o shall_v this_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o degree_n which_o in_o this_o life_n no_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o degree_n yet_o have_v the_o christian_a a_o begin_v obedience_n to_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o part_n both_o these_o be_v true_a the_o most_o perfect_a christian_n can_v keep_v one_o of_o the_o lord_n commandment_n as_o he_o shall_v and_o so_o we_o deny_v unto_o he_o the_o perfection_n of_o degree_n and_o yet_o he_o keep_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o a_o begin_v obedience_n and_o so_o we_o grant_v to_o he_o the_o perfection_n of_o part_n for_o there_o be_v no_o grace_n needful_a to_o salvation_n but_o every_o true_a christian_a have_v some_o part_n and_o measure_v thereof_o bastard_z professor_n can_v make_v this_o melody_n reprove_v they_o flatter_v themselves_o because_o they_o be_v free_a of_o some_o sin_n when_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v captive_v by_o other_o great_a sin_n which_o reign_n in_o they_o and_o command_v they_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n be_v so_o link_v together_o that_o he_o who_o transgress_v 10._o one_o transgress_v all_o if_o one_o string_n of_o this_o instrument_n be_v break_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v distemper_v and_o therefore_o do_v tehy_a far_o deceive_v themselves_o who_o divide_v the_o law_n in_o some_o thing_n they_o be_v content_a to_o subject_v themselves_o unto_o it_o in_o other_o usurp_v a_o liberty_n to_o break_v it_o which_o will_v never_o be_v allow_v these_o answer_n the_o lord_n as_o a_o echo_n do_v voice_n the_o voice_n of_o a_o man_n it_o resound_v in_o part_n but_o not_o whole_o or_o like_o naaman_n be_v content_a to_o serve_v god_n but_o with_o a_o exception_n or_o reservation_n of_o some_o sin_n which_o they_o can_v nor_o will_v not_o cast_v siom_n they_o there_o be_v no_o man_n so_o evil_a but_o in_o some_o thing_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v good_a but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o good_a which_o the_o lord_n require_v such_o evil_a divider_n can_v make_v no_o concord_n of_o spiritual_a music_n to_o the_o lord_n now_o with_o their_o harp_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v vial_n golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n and_o those_o odour_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o open_v a_o clear_a entrance_n to_o these_o word_n which_o otherwise_o have_v be_v more_o obscure_a a_o vial_n be_v a_o vessel_n narrow_a beneath_o wide_o above_o now_o this_o vial_n be_v also_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o wherein_o heart_n show_v how_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v enlarge_v towards_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o but_o contract_v beneath_o open_v towards_o god_n but_o close_v towards_o the_o world_n and_o thing_n therein_o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o garden_n enclose_v 12._o wherein_o nothing_o can_v enter_v but_o that_o which_o come_v from_o above_o and_o the_o vial_n be_v say_v to_o be_v pure_a of_o gold_n because_o the_o heart_n that_o praise_v the_o lord_n shall_v be_v holy_a and_o pure_a i_o will_v that_o man_n pray_v every_o where_o lift_v up_o pure_a hand_n as_o also_o to_o show_v 8._o that_o a_o pure_a heart_n praise_v the_o lord_n be_v precious_a and_o honourable_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n for_o vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o vessel_n of_o honour_n be_v put_v by_o the_o apostle_n 20._o for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o these_o vial_n be_v say_v to_o be_v full_a of_o odour_n which_o odour_n be_v expound_v to_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n so_o be_v they_o figure_v under_o the_o law_n by_o sweet_a incense_n and_o such_o as_o be_v spiritual_a among_o the_o jew_n understand_v this_o very_a well_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o external_a sweet_a odour_n wherein_o the_o lord_n delight_v they_o use_v the_o ceremonial_a incense_n but_o neglect_v not_o the_o spiritual_a incense_n figure_v thereby_o as_o be_v evident_a out_o of_o david_n his_o prayer_n let_v my_o prayer_n 2._o be_v direct_v before_o thou_o as_o incense_v and_o proper_o be_v prayer_n figure_v by_o incense_n quia_fw-la sursum_fw-la fertur_fw-la oratio_fw-la &_o coelestia_fw-la quaerit_fw-la for_o the_o fume_n thereof_o ascend_v and_o seek_v heavenly_a thing_n as_o also_o because_o it_o be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a to_o the_o lord_n the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n be_v odoriferous_a and_o pleasant_a smell_n unto_o the_o lord_n as_o when_o noah_n sacrifice_v the_o lord_n smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n of_o rest_n 21._o but_o the_o bride_n and_o the_o bridegroom_n have_v their_o odour_n own_o odour_n which_o either_o of_o they_o present_v to_o other_o the_o perfume_n and_o sweet_a ointment_n of_o christ_n be_v two_o first_o his_o merit_n for_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n have_v a_o golden_a censor_n full_a of_o odour_n 3._o and_o these_o ascend_v to_o his_o father_n second_o his_o us._n compassion_n be_v call_v sweet_a ointment_n and_o these_o descend_v upon_o his_o brethren_n thy_o name_n be_v as_o a_o ointment_n pour_v out_o say_v the_o church_n to_o her_o saviour_n his_o compassion_n be_v not_o lock_v up_o in_o his_o treasury_n like_o precious_a ointment_n enclose_v in_o a_o box_n but_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o ointment_n pour_v out_o the_o fragrant_a smell_n whereof_o shall_v allure_v we_o to_o love_v he_o and_o run_v after_o he_o his_o sweet_a mercy_n declare_v upon_o so_o many_o stand_v for_o example_n to_o we_o to_o confirm_v we_o in_o assurance_n of_o the_o like_a mercy_n if_o repent_v of_o our_o sin_n we_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o leper_n come_v to_o he_o and_o be_v cleanse_v the_o blind_a cry_v to_o he_o and_o receive_v their_o sight_n the_o paralitique_a be_v carry_v to_o he_o and_o be_v heal_v the_o adulteress_n be_v bring_v to_o he_o and_o be_v absolve_v the_o persecutor_n of_o saint_n be_v pardon_v his_o own_o disciple_n that_o deny_v he_o yea_o the_o jew_n who_o crucify_v he_o be_v convert_v and_o receive_v to_o mercy_n in_o odour_n horum_fw-la curremus_fw-la post_fw-la bernard_n te_fw-la there_o be_v sweet_a ointment_n pour_v out_o and_o in_o the_o savour_n of_o they_o will_v we_o run_v after_o thou_o we_o be_v more_o than_o senseless_a if_o the_o sweet_a smell_n of_o they_o allure_v we_o not_o also_o to_o come_v that_o we_o may_v be_v refresh_v by_o they_o the_o church_n have_v in_o like_a manner_n her_o twofold_a odour_n odour_n first_o the_o odour_n of_o contrition_n next_o of_o thanksgiving_a the_o ingredient_n whereof_o the_o odour_n of_o contrition_n be_v make_v be_v our_o sin_n and_o thereof_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o every_o child_n of_o god_n gather_v together_o in_o one_o handful_n his_o sin_n not_o spare_v any_o that_o he_o know_v or_o can_v remember_v and_o in_o the_o mortar_n of_o a_o sorrowful_a heart_n he_o bray_v they_o with_o the_o pestle_n of_o contrition_n and_o with_o the_o publican_n beat_v on_o his_o breast_n whereof_o a_o sweet_a and_o pleasant_a savour_n ascend_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o other_o thereof_o perfume_n have_v no_o ingredient_n but_o god_n sweet_a mercy_n with_o a_o godly_a rejoice_v in_o they_o now_o these_o mercy_n be_v so_o many_o that_o none_o can_v count_v they_o in_o order_n yet_o the_o saint_n so_o far_o as_o of_o weakness_n they_o may_v gather_v they_o together_o in_o one_o mass_n by_o diligent_a meditation_n of_o they_o they_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o thanksgiving_n and_o this_o be_v a_o sweet_a smell_a sacrifice_n unto_o the_o lord_n the_o jesuit_n of_o rheims_n abuse_v this_o place_n to_o rhemist_n prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o their_o prayer_n unto_o saint_n depart_v for_o so_o they_o
write_v upon_o it_o it_o be_v plain_a here_o that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n offer_v up_o the_o prayer_n of_o faithful_a and_o holy_a person_n on_o earth_n and_o that_o they_o have_v knowledge_n of_o our_o affair_n and_o desire_n but_o this_o text_n offer_v not_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o we_o shall_v show_v at_o length_n these_o saint_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n militant_a and_o triumphant_a every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v their_o own_o vial_n and_o no_o word_n here_o of_o any_o prayer_n make_v by_o any_o of_o they_o for_o other_o beside_z that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o desire_n appertain_v to_o none_o but_o the_o lord_n who_o search_v the_o reins_n and_o the_o heart_n this_o doubt_n can_v be_v loose_v by_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n saint_n depart_v offer_v up_o thanksgiving_n for_o the_o word_n use_v here_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d some_o make_v this_o answer_n but_o indeed_o it_o take_v not_o away_o the_o doubt_n for_o understand_v therefore_o of_o this_o place_n we_o must_v know_v that_o there_o be_v four_o sort_n of_o prayer_n reckon_v here_o by_o the_o apostle_n the_o first_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o prayer_n for_o avert_v of_o evil_a the_o second_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o prayer_n for_o some_o good_a that_o be_v lack_v the_o three_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o prayer_n whereby_o one_o of_o we_o 2._o pray_v for_o another_o and_o the_o four_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o prayer_n whereby_o we_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n all_o these_o four_o sort_n be_v use_v by_o saint_n militant_a triumphant_a two_o of_o they_o only_o be_v ascribe_v to_o saint_n triumphant_a namely_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thanksgiving_n and_o supplication_n for_o the_o good_a which_o they_o want_v where_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o good_a want_n they_o who_o pray_v be_v in_o heaven_n for_o which_o they_o have_v need_v to_o pray_v the_o answer_n be_v they_o want_v a_o twofold_a good_a which_o god_n have_v promise_v and_o they_o long_o to_o enjoy_v first_o they_o want_v their_o body_n without_o which_o the_o soul_n body_n in_o heaven_n can_v have_v full_a joy_n for_o by_o their_o first_o creation_n they_o be_v join_v together_o as_o inseparable_a companion_n not_o to_o be_v divide_v if_o they_o have_v not_o fall_v in_o the_o transgression_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o one_o can_v be_v full_o content_v want_v the_o other_o for_o which_o to_o fulfil_v their_o joy_n they_o pray_v for_o restitution_n of_o their_o body_n second_o they_o want_v their_o brethren_n brethren_n the_o remanent_fw-la member_n of_o christ_n his_o mystical_a body_n requisite_a necessary_o to_o their_o perfection_n for_o god_n have_v so_o provide_v that_o they_o without_o we_o 40._o shall_v not_o be_v perfect_v abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n have_v perfect_v great_a joy_n in_o heaven_n but_o not_o full_a joy_n because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v perfect_v without_o their_o brethren_n that_o therefore_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v complete_a and_o so_o their_o joy_n fulfil_v they_o pray_v for_o christ_n his_o second_o come_v which_o can_v be_v till_o the_o last_o and_o young_a of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v bear_v and_o bring_v to_o the_o fellowship_n of_o jesus_n christ._n and_o this_o be_v make_v clear_a hereafter_o when_o the_o soul_n under_o the_o altar_n be_v bring_v in_o cry_v how_o long_o o_o 6._o necessity_n lord_n how_o long_o &_o c_o for_o this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o they_o who_o want_v something_o they_o will_v fain_o have_v and_o yet_o be_v sure_a to_o enjoy_v it_o thus_o we_o see_v then_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n triumphant_a be_v general_a they_o pray_v for_o their_o body_n and_o brethren_n but_o to_o gather_v of_o this_o that_o they_o know_v our_o necessitio_n our_o particular_a tentation_n far_o less_o our_o secret_a desire_n be_v but_o a_o dote_a dream_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v a_o little_a insist_v in_o this_o same_o metaplior_fw-la of_o odour_n or_o incense_n it_o shall_v discover_v their_o error_n more_o clear_o saint_n for_o first_o incense_v offer_v to_o god_n may_v not_o be_v make_v but_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n and_o with_o such_o ingredient_n as_o god_n himself_o command_v teach_v we_o 30._o that_o prayer_n unto_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v not_o as_o we_o etc._n fancy_n to_o ourselves_o but_o as_o he_o have_v command_v us._n now_o if_o we_o shall_v look_v to_o this_o commandment_n it_o direct_v we_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o none_o other_o there_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n the_o father_n call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o trouble_n i_o will_v deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o 50._o shall_v glorify_v i_o there_o again_o be_v the_o instruction_n of_o god_n the_o son_n when_o you_o pray_v pray_v in_o this_o manner_n 9_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v the_o direction_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o teach_v we_o in_o our_o prayer_n to_o cry_v abba_n father_n no_o word_n here_o 8._o of_o any_o prayer_n to_o abraham_n moses_n or_o isaiah_n to_o cherubin_n or_o seraphim_n to_o angel_n or_o saint_n depart_v second_o incense_n may_v not_o be_v burn_v but_o upon_o jesus_n the_o golden_a altar_n only_o whereof_o there_o be_v but_o one_o figure_v the_o lord_n jesus_n teach_v we_o that_o our_o prayer_n may_v not_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o any_o other_o but_o jesus_n christ_n only_o for_o there_o be_v not_o any_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n by_o which_o we_o may_v be_v save_v and_o in_o he_o only_o be_v the_o father_n well_o please_v 5._o three_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o make_v etc._n a_o odour_n for_o his_o own_o pleasure_n or_o private_a use_n of_o those_o gum_n whereof_o the_o lord_n command_v his_o incense_n to_o be_v make_v and_o that_o under_o a_o most_o strait_a penalty_n for_o so_o stand_v the_o law_n you_o shall_v not_o make_v unto_o you_o any_o composition_n like_a to_o this_o perfume_n it_o shall_v be_v holy_a for_o the_o lord_n whosoever_o shall_v make_v like_a unto_o 38_o that_o to_o smell_v thereof_o even_o he_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o his_o people_n and_o this_o do_v plain_o teach_v we_o that_o no_o creature_n shall_v smell_v the_o savour_n of_o our_o prayer_n it_o be_v the_o incense_n holy_a to_o the_o lord_n and_o appertain_v to_o our_o god_n only_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o papist_n when_o they_o seek_v patrociny_n scripture_n for_o their_o error_n from_o holy_a scripture_n do_v it_o with_o no_o better_a success_n than_o joab_n do_v when_o he_o make_v his_o refuge_n to_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o altar_n he_o flee_v unto_o it_o to_o seek_v the_o safety_n of_o his_o life_n but_o he_o be_v pull_v from_o it_o and_o execute_v to_o the_o death_n so_o they_o when_o they_o bring_v in_o scripture_n to_o defend_v their_o error_n do_v in_o effect_n bring_v it_o to_o destory_n themselves_o but_o to_o leave_v they_o let_v we_o consider_v for_o our_o comfort_n perfume_v how_o our_o prayer_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o perfume_n all_o the_o spice_n of_o myrrh_n cinnamon_n and_o what_o be_v most_o excellent_a on_o earth_n can_v make_v such_o a_o perfume_n from_o heaven_n it_o come_v and_o unto_o heaven_n it_o return_v o_o what_o a_o great_a mercy_n be_v this_o we_o be_v not_o yet_o able_a to_o ascend_v ourselves_o and_o yet_o have_v we_o this_o liberty_n and_o privilege_n as_o to_o send_v our_o ambassador_n in_o our_o name_n before_o we_o which_o be_v so_o welcome_a to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n that_o he_o account_v of_o they_o as_o of_o sweet_a odour_n and_o perfume_n send_v up_o unto_o he_o let_v we_o mark_v this_o for_o many_o time_n the_o weak_a prayer_n christian_n faint_v and_o become_v remiss_a in_o prayer_n because_o he_o disesteeme_v of_o his_o own_o prayer_n this_o be_v a_o policy_n and_o tentation_n of_o the_o old_a serpent_n to_o make_v thou_o neglect_v that_o which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v most_o hurtful_a to_o himself_o most_o helpful_a to_o thou_o &_o most_o acceptable_a to_o thy_o god_n but_o do_v it_o not_o noli_fw-la vilipendere_fw-la bern._n or_o ationem_fw-la tuam_fw-la quoniam_fw-la ille_fw-la ad_fw-la quem_fw-la or_o as_o non_fw-la vilipendit_fw-la do_v not_o vilipend_v thy_o own_o prayer_n for_o he_o to_o who_o thou_o pray_v vilipend_v it_o not_o it_o be_v a_o sweet_a odour_n unto_o the_o lord_n verse_n 9_o and_o they_o sing_v a_o new_a song_n say_v thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o take_v the_o book_n and_o to_o open_v the_o scale_n thereof_o because_o thou_o be_v kill_v and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n by_o thy_o blood_n out_o of_o every_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n
professor_n think_v needless_a now_o to_o be_v require_v but_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o will_v wish_v they_o in_o this_o and_o other_o laudable_a custom_n to_o be_v less_o nice_a and_o scrupulous_a than_o they_o be_v the_o stile_n they_o give_v unto_o the_o lord_n have_v be_v stile_n entreat_v before_o our_o god_n be_v a_o live_a lord_n in_o himself_o in_o deo_fw-la idem_fw-la sunt_fw-la vivens_fw-la et_fw-la vita_fw-la and_o carthus_n he_o give_v be_v and_o life_n to_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o live_v a_o threefold_a life_n flow_v from_o the_o lord_n first_o of_o he_o nature_n second_o of_o grace_n three_o of_o glory_n nature_n life_n be_v either_o vegetative_a sensible_a or_o reasonable_a little_a cause_n have_v they_o to_o rejoice_v who_o have_v no_o more_o but_o it_o for_o in_o the_o vegetative_a life_n plant_n &_o tree_n of_o the_o earth_n excel_v man_n in_o the_o sensitive_a life_n beast_n and_o fowl_n be_v quick_a in_o any_o sense_n then_o man_n and_o for_o the_o reasonable_a life_n pagan_n and_o heathen_a philosopher_n have_v far_o exceed_v even_o those_o who_o be_v name_v christian_n all_o our_o comfort_n then_o stand_v in_o this_o life_n of_o grace_n now_o and_o life_n of_o glory_n hereafter_o the_o lord_n make_v we_o partaker_n of_o they_o for_o christ_n sake_n chap._n vi_o verse_n 1._o after_o i_o behold_v when_o the_o lamb_n have_v open_v one_o of_o the_o scale_n and_o hear_v one_o of_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n say_v as_o it_o be_v the_o noise_n of_o thunder_n come_v and_o see_v the_o vision_n of_o preparation_n three_o be_v end_v in_o the_o two_o precede_a chapter_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o now_o follow_v the_o vision_n of_o prediction_n foretell_v thing_n which_o short_o must_v be_v do_v and_o these_o be_v three_o every_o one_o of_o they_o diduce_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n unto_o judgement_n as_o at_o more_o length_n we_o have_v show_v in_o prolegomenis_fw-la wherein_o the_o general_a method_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v short_o set_v down_o the_o first_o prophetical_a vision_n be_v contain_v in_o chapter_n this_o six_o and_o the_o seven_o chapter_n follow_v for_o the_o seven_o be_v a_o appendix_n of_o this_o and_o have_v in_o it_o a_o large_a explication_n of_o the_o five_o and_o six_o seal_n as_o god_n will_v we_o shall_v hear_v so_o than_o the_o first_o prophecy_n be_v absolve_v in_o six_o seal_n whereof_o the_o last_o conclude_v with_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o the_o seven_o seal_n have_v in_o her_o bosom_n the_o seven_o trumpet_n which_o make_v up_o the_o second_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n begin_v at_o the_o eight_o chapter_n twelve_o for_o till_o then_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v not_o open_v and_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o there_o it_o conclude_v with_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o three_o 21._o prophecy_n begin_v at_o the_o twelve_o and_o continue_v to_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o whereof_o if_o the_o lord_n please_v we_o will_v speak_v hereafter_o this_o first_o prophecy_n as_o i_o say_v be_v general_a for_o overcome_v it_o contain_v a_o general_a prognostication_n and_o present_v to_o we_o a_o view_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o thing_n as_o they_o will_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n whereof_o the_o sum_n be_v christ_n shall_v go_v through_o the_o world_n upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n preach_v the_o gospel_n where_o and_o when_o it_o best_o please_v he_o this_o be_v prophesy_v in_o the_o first_o seal_n like_o a_o crown_a king_n and_o conqueror_n he_o have_v go_v out_o long_o ago_o upon_o his_o white_a horse_n and_o so_o shall_v he_o continue_v till_o he_o overcome_v but_o this_o victory_n let_v not_o the_o church_n look_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v without_o blood_n for_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n figure_v by_o the_o red_a gospel_n horse_n and_o one_o ride_v on_o it_o shall_v in_o most_o cruel_a manner_n persecute_v the_o preacher_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o this_o be_v foreshowed_n in_o the_o second_o world_n seal_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a for_o the_o lord_n shall_v send_v out_o the_o black_a horse_n as_o be_v tell_v in_o the_o three_o seal_n and_o the_o pale_a horse_n who_o come_v out_o at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o four_o seal_n by_o these_o two_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n under_o which_o all_o other_o horrible_a plague_n of_o god_n be_v comprehend_v shall_v the_o lord_n be_v revenge_v on_o the_o world_n for_o contempt_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o because_o in_o these_o trouble_v many_o of_o the_o they_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v suffer_v bodily_a death_n it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o five_o seal_n how_o their_o soul_n rest_n in_o peace_n with_o god_n till_o the_o number_n of_o their_o brethren_n be_v fulfil_v and_o then_o as_o they_o cry_v for_o judgement_n so_o the_o great_a and_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n all_o shall_v come_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o six_o seal_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n that_o the_o only_a cause_n why_o angel_n delay_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o last_o wrath_n for_o which_o the_o soul_n of_o martyr_n under_o the_o altar_n cry_v unto_o god_n be_v that_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o yet_o seal_v which_o be_v once_o do_v then_o shall_v the_o lord_n recompense_n trouble_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v 7._o his_o church_n as_o in_o most_o fearful_a manner_n be_v declare_v in_o the_o six_o seal_n but_o shall_v render_v to_o his_o trouble_a saint_n rest_n when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v show_v himself_o from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n as_o at_o length_n and_o most_o comfortable_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n from_o the_o ten_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n and_o this_o any_o judicious_a man_n that_o will_v read_v without_o seal_n preconceived_n opinion_n may_v easy_o consider_v that_o the_o seven_o chapter_n have_v in_o it_o no_o prophetical_a prediction_n but_o only_o a_o large_a explanation_n of_o the_o five_o seal_n in_o which_o martyr_n be_v will_v to_o wait_v till_o their_o fellow-servant_n be_v seal_v and_o the_o secure_a and_o happy_a estate_n of_o saint_n even_o in_o suffer_v yea_o their_o glorious_a and_o joyful_a estate_n after_o suffering_n be_v at_o great_a length_n express_v before_o the_o comfortless_a estate_n of_o the_o wicked_a whereunto_o the_o six_o seal_n deliver_v they_o be_v touch_v at_o all_o thus_o have_v we_o the_o sum_n of_o this_o first_o and_o general_a prophecy_n now_o before_o the_o open_n of_o the_o first_o four_o seal_n seal_n s._n john_n be_v prepare_v where_o we_o have_v these_o circumstance_n first_o what_o be_v s._n john_n do_v when_o this_o vision_n be_v present_v to_o he_o to_o wit_n behold_v second_o who_o prepare_v and_o waken_v he_o one_o of_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n and_o three_o what_o say_v he_o to_o he_o come_v and_o see_v the_o first_o be_v note_v in_o these_o word_n after_o i_o behold_v import_v s._n john_n hitherto_o have_v see_v many_o glorious_a vision_n and_o yet_o now_o he_o look_v for_o more_o sure_o it_o be_v that_o every_o sight_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n which_o saint_n get_v provoke_v they_o to_o a_o desire_n of_o more_o for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o great_a argument_n of_o grace_n receive_v than_o a_o fervent_a desire_n of_o further_a grace_n beside_o the_o desire_n this_o behold_v import_v a_o constant_a consideration_n without_o weary_v or_o waver_a a_o stable_n and_o fix_a mind_n with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n be_v require_v in_o they_o who_o will_v learn_v thing_n heavenly_a the_o natural_a eye_n if_o it_o be_v close_v or_o if_o it_o be_v circumactus_fw-la tumble_v and_o walter_v in_o the_o head_n or_o then_o if_o it_o look_v negligent_o can_v see_v nor_o take_v up_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v before_o it_o and_o so_o be_v it_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n if_o it_o attend_v not_o steadfast_o and_o careful_o to_o heavenly_a thing_n it_o can_v perceive_v nor_o understand_v they_o the_o second_o circumstance_n be_v by_o who_o be_v he_o vision_n prepare_v that_o be_v by_o one_o of_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n that_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o four_o as_o the_o learned_a interpreter_n have_v sufficient_o clear_v they_o who_o expound_v these_o four_o live_a creature_n to_o signify_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o preacher_n by_o the_o first_o of_o they_o understand_v the_o first_o preacher_n after_o the_o apostle_n namely_o quadratus_n and_o aristides_n ahentense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o athens_n by_o the_o second_o again_o justinus_n martyr_n and_o melito_n sardenses_n of_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n but_o this_o unto_o i_o with_o the_o reverence_n i_o why_o owe_v to_o so_o laborious_a man_n seem_v a_o idle_a speculation_n or_o if_o they_o will_v a_o divination_n without_o
righteousness_n etc._n etc._n so_o the_o horse_n whereupon_o this_o conqueror_n be_v carry_v through_o the_o world_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n primasius_n by_o the_o word_n horse_n understand_v apostle_n and_o preacher_n minister_n without_o the_o word_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v and_o the_o word_n without_o a_o minister_n able_a to_o preach_v it_o be_v not_o profitable_a these_o two_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o most_o wise_a dispensation_n have_v join_v together_o for_o it_o have_v please_v god_n by_o the_o foolishness_n of_o preach_v to_o 21._o save_v they_o who_o believe_v the_o horse_n than_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n the_o gospel_n preach_v be_v the_o chariot_n and_o horse_n whereby_o this_o king_n be_v carry_v through_o the_o world_n as_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n he_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n so_o in_o the_o gather_n and_o govern_v of_o his_o church_n he_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o preacher_n who_o can_v 14._o hear_v but_o by_o preach_v and_o who_o can_v preach_v except_o they_o be_v send_v these_o be_v figure_v by_o horse_n first_o for_o the_o courage_n courage_n wherewith_o they_o be_v endue_v this_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o lord_n himself_o as_o a_o special_a property_n of_o the_o horse_n he_o mock_v at_o fear_n and_o be_v not_o afraid_a 25._o he_o turn_v not_o back_o from_o the_o sword_n and_o doubtless_o preacher_n in_o who_o christ_n be_v and_o upon_o who_o he_o ride_v be_v valiant_a and_o courageous_a man_n 9_o their_o forehead_n be_v like_o the_o adamant_n and_o hard_a than_o the_o flint_n they_o fear_v no_o death_n they_o faint_v for_o no_o timidity_n trouble_n that_o can_v follow_v they_o in_o the_o service_n of_o christ._n notable_a be_v that_o answer_n of_o andrew_n the_o apostle_n when_o egeas_fw-la governor_n of_o patris_fw-la upbraid_v he_o with_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o will_v never_o have_v preach_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o cross_n if_o he_o have_v fear_v it_o and_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v far_o from_o that_o timidity_n which_o make_v man_n unfaithful_a in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n so_o be_v they_o as_o far_o from_o temerity_n whereby_o temerity_n man_n ignorant_o zealous_a be_v precipitate_a and_o carry_v headlong_o to_o accelerate_v for_o every_o light_a conceit_n of_o their_o brain_n trouble_v on_o themselves_o their_o zeal_n be_v like_o a_o fire_n kindle_v of_o stubble_n or_o straw_n which_o make_v a_o fair_a blaze_n for_o the_o time_n but_o because_o it_o have_v no_o matter_n to_o maintain_v it_o vanish_v incontinent_a and_o end_v in_o ungracious_a smoke_n i_o wish_v we_o have_v no_o example_n of_o any_o such_o among_o we_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o the_o gospel_n to_o speak_v the_o one_o day_n and_o retreat_n the_o other_o a_o wrong_a cause_n will_v never_o furnish_v strength_n in_o trouble_n wisdom_n require_v that_o man_n beforehand_o shall_v ponder_v and_o consider_v well_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o they_o will_v resolve_v to_o suffer_v affliction_n again_o preacher_n be_v figure_v by_o horse_n and_o speedy_o christ_n go_v forth_o to_o conquer_v appear_v ride_v on_o a_o horse_n to_o note_v the_o speed_n and_o celerity_n which_o he_o be_v to_o use_v in_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v wonderful_a to_o see_v how_o in_o a_o short_a time_n the_o lord_n jesus_n run_v through_o the_o world_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n overcome_v and_o subdue_a to_o his_o obedience_n most_o mighty_a kingdom_n by_o most_o weak_a instrument_n this_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o cyprian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o martyr_n ecce_fw-la à_fw-la domini_fw-la martyrio_fw-la redempt●…ris_fw-la temporibus_fw-la anni_fw-la effluxerunt_fw-la plus_fw-la minùs_fw-la 240._o iamque_fw-la huius_fw-la vitis_fw-la palmites_fw-la latiùs_fw-la se_fw-la sparserunt_fw-la quam_fw-la romanum_fw-la imperium_fw-la it_o be_v little_o more_o or_o less_o say_v he_o of_o two_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n the_o redeemer_n and_o sword_n yet_o in_o this_o time_n the_o church_n have_v spread_v out_o her_o branch_n large_a than_o the_o roman_a empire_n et_fw-la qu●…s_fw-la nulla_fw-la ferri_fw-la vis_fw-la domare_fw-la potuit_fw-la emollit_fw-la sanguis_fw-la agni_n candidi_fw-la and_o they_o who_o no_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n be_v able_a to_o daunt_v be_v make_v peaceable_a and_o tame_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o unspotted_a lamb_n among_o many_o of_o that_o sort_n how_o the_o lord_n have_v be_v merciful_a to_o scotland_n in_o that_o about_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n this_o conqueror_n with_o his_o white_a horse_n enter_v in_o among_o we_o and_o subject_v we_o to_o himself_o who_o the_o roman_n can_v never_o subject_a to_o their_o empire_n i_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v in_o that_o treatise_n entitle_v six_o day_n conference_n between_o a_o catholic_a christian_a and_o a_o catholic_a roman_a and_o again_o as_o the_o horse_n be_v bridle_v and_o rule_v they_o and_o turn_v here_o or_o there_o by_o he_o that_o ride_v upon_o it_o and_o be_v not_o leave_v to_o himself_o to_o wander_v where-away_a he_o will_v so_o be_v it_o with_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v direct_v to_o country_n kingdom_n and_o city_n at_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o christ_n they_o neither_o come_v nor_o go_v by_o accident_n but_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n a_o notable_a example_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o s._n paul_n he_o be_v of_o purpose_n to_o go_v to_o bithynia_n but_o the_o spirit_n suffer_v he_o not_o yea_o command_v 16._o he_o to_o go_v to_o macedonia_n and_o albeit_o now_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o inform_v his_o servant_n by_o such_o extraordinary_a revelation_n yet_o do_v he_o still_o work_v with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n appoint_v they_o to_o such_o place_n and_o people_n as_o in_o his_o wisdom_n he_o think_v most_o expedient_a take_v heed_n to_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o 20._o overseer_n and_o they_o be_v as_o star_n in_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o 1._o jesus_n they_o shine_v not_o but_o where_o he_o hold_v out_o his_o hand_n and_o send_v they_o this_o be_v a_o warn_n to_o preacher_n if_o they_o look_v to_o have_v their_o ministry_n bless_v of_o the_o lord_n let_v they_o not_o go_v where_o the_o call_n of_o god_n lead_v they_o not_o other_o rider_n be_v help_v by_o their_o horse_n but_o here_o rider_n the_o horse_n be_v help_v by_o the_o rider_n for_o what_o be_v a_o preacher_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o with_o he_o and_o work_v in_o he_o he_o be_v like_o a_o pen_n without_o a_o hand_n it_o can_v write_v nothing_o a_o tongue_n without_o a_o heart_n it_o can_v speak_v nothing_o a_o musical_a instrument_n without_o one_o to_o touch_v it_o can_v make_v no_o sound_n at_o all_o we_o be_v not_o able_a 5._o of_o ourselves_o sufficient_o to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n all_o help_n our_o sufficiency_n be_v of_o god_n sith_o it_o be_v so_o our_o care_n shall_v be_v to_o carry_v our_o lord_n always_o in_o our_o conscience_n how_o shall_v we_o wait_v upon_o he_o how_o shall_v we_o most_o careful_o keep_v he_o since_o without_o he_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o it_o be_v write_v of_o bucephalus_n the_o horse_n of_o alexander_n that_o he_o will_v suffer_v none_o to_o ride_v upon_o he_o but_o his_o own_o master_n whether_o that_o be_v true_a or_o not_o sure_o it_o be_v this_o be_v most_o true_a preacher_n shall_v not_o be_v ass_n like_o issachar_n couch_v down_o to_o receive_v they_o every_o burden_n that_o any_o man_n will_v lay_v upon_o they_o but_o they_o be_v horse_n for_o christ_n only_o to_o ride_v upon_o yea_o all_o other_o christian_n in_o their_o calling_n be_v also_o to_o look_v unto_o this_o that_o the_o commandment_n and_o direction_n of_o their_o way_n be_v reserve_v only_o to_o cant._n jesus_n christ_n beatae_fw-la animae_fw-la quae_fw-la dorsum_fw-la suum_fw-la cur●…arunt_fw-la ut_fw-la suscipiant_fw-la sessorem_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o fraenacius_fw-la patiuntur_fw-la ut_fw-la quocunque_fw-la ipse_fw-la voluerit_fw-la flectat_fw-la eas_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la iam_fw-la propria_fw-la voluntate_fw-la incedunt_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la ducuntur_fw-la &_o reducuntur_fw-la voluntate_fw-la sessoris_fw-la bless_a be_v the_o soul_n which_o bow_v their_o back_n to_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o ride_v upon_o they_o who_o be_v content_a to_o be_v bridle_v by_o he_o and_o turn_v where-away_a he_o will_v these_o walk_v not_o after_o their_o own_o will_n but_o be_v turn_v hither_o and_o thither_o at_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o he_o who_o ride_v upon_o they_o but_o to_o return_v and_o conclude_v this_o second_o point_n spur_n as_o there_o be_v no_o horse_n which_o need_v not_o the_o spur_n and_o the_o bridle_n the_o one_o to_o stir_v he_o forward_o the_o other_o to_o govern_v he_o in_o
tertullian_n and_o by_o the_o four_o cyprian_a martyr_n and_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n but_o we_o have_v show_v before_o that_o as_o these_o four_o live_a creature_n can_v be_v the_o four_o evangelist_n preacher_n because_o saint_n john_n himself_o be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o evangelist_n so_o no_o more_o can_v they_o be_v preacher_n for_o saint_n john_n be_v here_o send_v to_o waken_v up_o both_o preacher_n and_o professor_n to_o the_o patient_a suffering_n of_o trouble_n which_o here_o be_v foretell_v unto_o they_o we_o adhere_v therefore_o to_o our_o former_a exposition_n that_o these_o live_a creature_n be_v angel_n add_v this_o unto_o it_o that_o this_o first_o prophecy_n be_v general_a shall_v neither_o be_v bind_v to_o particular_a time_n nor_o person_n for_o even_o in_o our_o own_o day_n the_o rider_n on_o the_o white_a horse_n ride_v still_o and_o the_o red_a horse_n follow_v the_o white_a to_o persecute_v he_o as_o the_o bloody_a murder_n and_o treasonable_a plot_n in_o france_n germany_n england_n and_o other_o part_n of_o christendom_n may_v witness_v verse_n 4._o and_o there_o go_v out_o another_o horse_n that_o be_v red_a and_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o that_o sit_v thereon_o to_o take_v peace_n from_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v kill_v one_o another_o and_o there_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o a_o great_a sword_n at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o second_o seal_n saint_n john_n earth_n see_v a_o sight_n far_o different_a from_o the_o first_o the_o first_o sight_n be_v comfortable_a but_o doleful_a be_v these_o which_o follow_v our_o comfort_n on_o earth_n be_v not_o without_o cross_n nor_o yet_o our_o cross_n thanks_o be_v to_o god_n without_o comfort_n always_o we_o be_v forewarn_v here_o that_o persecution_n together_o will_v follow_v preach_v we_o must_v not_o always_o promise_v to_o ourselves_o prosperous_a and_o pleasant_a thing_n when_o david_n be_v anoint_v king_n all_o the_o philistines_n come_v out_o in_o battle_n to_o seek_v he_o he_o be_v a_o 17._o type_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o jesus_n be_v bear_v in_o bethleem_n 3._o herod_n and_o all_o jerusalem_n be_v aghast_a and_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v baptize_v satan_n tempt_v he_o it_o warn_v we_o say_v s._n chrysostome_n that_o we_o also_o will_v give_v our_o name_n unto_o christ_n we_o must_v prepare_v ourselves_o both_o to_o be_v persecute_v of_o man_n and_o tempt_v of_o satan_n ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la initiis_fw-la ad_fw-la tentationes_fw-la praeparamur_fw-la cum_fw-la cernimus_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la christ_n incunabilis_fw-la istud_fw-la effectum_fw-la etc._n etc._n long_o and_o marvellous_a peace_n have_v we_o have_v great_a peace_n have_v be_v the_o lord_n mercy_n towards_o we_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v that_o the_o white_a horse_n have_v ride_v so_o long_o and_o the_o red_a horse_n not_o follow_v he_o as_o here_o in_o this_o country_n where_o have_v there_o be_v so_o long_o preach_v without_o heresy_n or_o persecution_n as_o among_o we_o satan_n a_o far_o off_o have_v shake_v his_o bloody_a sword_n he_o at_o we_o but_o the_o lord_n have_v restrain_v he_o and_o bridle_v his_o bloody_a beast_n that_o they_o can_v not_o come_v near_o us._n the_o spanish_a army_n threaten_v to_o execute_v upon_o we_o the_o bloody_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o the_o lord_n drown_v they_o before_o our_o eye_n as_o he_o drown_v the_o egyptian_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o 30._o israel_n the_o remanent_fw-la of_o they_o he_o humble_v also_o before_o we_o and_o bring_v they_o into_o our_o street_n that_o they_o who_o purpose_v to_o make_v we_o prove_v their_o merciless_a cruelty_n may_v prove_v our_o christian_a syrian_a pity_n and_o compassion_n as_o the_o syrian_n who_o come_v to_o destroy_v samaria_n by_o the_o marvellous_a work_n of_o god_n be_v bring_v within_o the_o port_n thereof_o they_o be_v refresh_v with_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o send_v home_o again_o so_o move_v the_o lord_n our_o heart_n to_o do_v unto_o they_o god_n make_v we_o thankful_a for_o it_o and_o give_v we_o grace_n to_o prepare_v ourselves_o the_o more_o careful_o for_o the_o day_n of_o affliction_n because_o the_o lord_n hitherto_o have_v so_o long_o and_o love_o spare_v us._n satan_n as_o the_o white_a horse_n signify_v preacher_n by_o who_o ministry_n jesus_n be_v carry_v through_o the_o world_n so_o the_o red_a horse_n signify_v bloody_a persecuter_n and_o he_o who_o ride_v upon_o they_o be_v satan_n a_o liar_n and_o murderer_n ever_o 8._o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o type_n tell_v we_o that_o bastard_n cruel_a religion_n be_v always_o cruel_a example_n of_o all_o age_n prove_v it_o cain_n a_o bastard_n and_o false_a worshipper_n he_o slay_v abel_n a_o true_a sacrificer_n ishmael_n mock_v isaac_n and_o esau_n persecute_v jacob_n verberari_fw-la christianorum_fw-la degentes_fw-la proprium_fw-la est_fw-la slag●…llare_fw-la autem_fw-la pilati_n &_o caiaphae_fw-la sunt_fw-la officia_fw-la to_o suffer_v be_v the_o property_n of_o christian_n to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v not_o only_o to_o believe_v but_o to_o suffer_v also_o but_o to_o persecute_v and_o scourge_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o pilate_n and_o caiaphas_n the_o jesuit_n coster_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o encheridion_n rome_n testify_v that_o albeit_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v of_o a_o sufficient_a number_n to_o give_v battle_n to_o the_o persecute_v emperor_n yet_o they_o choose_v rather_o to_o propagate_v the_o gospel_n by_o patient_a suffer_v the_o shed_n of_o their_o own_o blood_n themby_a shed_v the_o blood_n of_o their_o persecuter_n ita_fw-la catholicos_fw-la pia_fw-la quaedam_fw-la enchirid_a tenuit_fw-la misericordia_fw-la such_o be_v then_o the_o tender_a mercy_n of_o catholic_n but_o i_o pray_v he_o tell_v i_o where_o be_v this_o tender_a mercy_n in_o pretend_a catholic_n roman_a at_o the_o murder_n of_o paris_n be_v it_o sheep_n not_o clear_a by_o his_o own_o confession_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n present_a be_v far_o degenerate_a from_o rome_n primitive_a if_o there_o be_v not_o any_o other_o argument_n against_o they_o their_o bloody_a tooth_n may_v testify_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o sheep_n of_o jesus_n but_o raven_a wolf_n but_o of_o this_o we_o have_v speak_v elsewhere_o destruction_n satan_n thirst_v for_o blood_n and_o when_o he_o have_v get_v it_o blood_n be_v his_o destruction_n he_o think_v all_o shall_v go_v well_o and_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v in_o peace_n if_o once_o he_o have_v jesus_n christ_n crucify_v but_o christ_n by_o death_n destroy_v he_o who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o he_o think_v by_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o saint_n to_o raze_v the_o christian_a name_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n but_o he_o be_v far_o deceive_v for_o it_o have_v prove_v true_a in_o all_o time_n which_o tertullian_n by_o experience_n mark_v in_o his_o time_n sanguis_fw-la martyrum_fw-la semen_fw-mi est_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o bush_n that_o burn_v but_o can_v cross_n be_v consume_v by_o fire_n it_o be_v the_o ark_n toss_v by_o water_n but_o still_o prevail_v against_o the_o water_n continual_a be_v the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n primitive_a 22._o yet_o christian_n increase_v daily_o deep_o root_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o water_v plenteous_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o again_o the_o more_o cruelty_n say_v justine_n be_v use_v against_o we_o the_o tryph._n more_o the_o number_n of_o believer_n be_v increase_v no_o otherwise_o than_o if_o a_o man_n cut_v the_o vine_n tree_n the_o better_a the_o branch_n thereof_o grow_v for_o the_o vine_n three_fw-mi plant_v by_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v his_o people_n and_o power_n be_v give_v he_o this_o be_v for_o the_o comfort_n will_v of_o the_o church_n that_o howsoever_o her_o enemy_n be_v many_o and_o most_o malicious_a yet_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o according_a to_o the_o power_n god_n give_v 30._o they_o yea_o and_o all_o the_o hair_n of_o your_o head_n be_v number_v not_o one_o of_o they_o can_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o by_o the_o will_n of_o your_o heavenly_a father_n time_n ne_fw-la pereas_fw-la cvius_fw-la capillus_fw-la 14._o non_fw-la peribit_fw-la be_v thou_o afraid_a lest_o thou_o perish_v since_o a_o hair_n of_o thy_o head_n can_v perish_v when_o pilate_n have_v brag_v of_o his_o power_n to_o jesus_n our_o lord_n give_v he_o this_o answer_n thou_o can_v have_v no_o power_n 11._o over_o i_o at_o all_o if_o it_o be_v not_o give_v thou_o from_o above_o yea_o satan_n himself_o confess_v that_o albeit_o many_o time_n 1._o he_o assay_v to_o have_v harm_v job_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o because_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o hedge_n unto_o he_o he_o be_v indeed_o a_o roar_a lion_n go_v about_o seek_v who_o he_o 4._o may_v devour_v but_o he_o can_v so_o much_o as_o enter_v
though_o thou_o he_o have_v they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o uphold_v thou_o if_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o anger_n look_v down_o upon_o thou_o a_o fearful_a example_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o baltasar_n the_o last_o of_o the_o assyrian_a monarch_n who_o have_v about_o 5._o he_o all_o worldly_a comfort_n that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n can_v crave_v yet_o when_o the_o lord_n waken_v his_o conscience_n and_o write_v his_o doom_n with_o three_o finger_n of_o a_o hand_n upon_o the_o wall_n over_o against_o he_o his_o countenance_n change_v his_o flesh_n tremble_v his_o knee_n smite_v one_o against_o the_o other_o his_o spirit_n be_v perturb_v and_o none_o of_o his_o comfort_n can_v comfort_v he_o sith_o it_o be_v so_o that_o we_o can_v endure_v to_o god_n want_v his_o creature_n far_o less_o can_v we_o live_v if_o we_o want_v himself_o will_v we_o still_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o wrath_n by_o our_o sin_n be_v we_o strong_a than_o he_o that_o 42._o any_o way_n we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v the_o force_n of_o his_o indignation_n why_o then_o be_v we_o not_o more_o careful_a to_o make_v peace_n with_o he_o thou_o can_v not_o resist_v he_o why_o will_v thou_o not_o be_v reconcile_v with_o he_o god_n give_v we_o wise_a and_o understand_v heart_n that_o in_o time_n we_o may_v consider_v of_o it_o this_o plague_n of_o famine_n come_v in_o into_o the_o three_o time_n room_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v limit_v within_o any_o definite_a time_n for_o as_o the_o course_n of_o the_o white_a horse_n shall_v continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n so_o where_o he_o be_v reject_v the_o black_a and_o the_o pale_a shall_v follow_v ac-according_a as_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o appoint_v they_o cotterius_n who_o assign_v seven_o year_n and_o seal_n no_o more_o to_o every_o seal_n confess_v he_o can_v prove_v that_o this_o plague_n of_o famine_n threaten_v here_o shall_v be_v restrain_v to_o seven_o year_n only_o and_o so_o it_o be_v indeed_o for_o where_o the_o red_a horse_n follow_v the_o white_a to_o persecute_v the_o preacher_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o send_v in_o the_o black_a and_o the_o pale_a horse_n to_o plague_v they_o they_o who_o despise_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n be_v just_o punish_v when_o bread_n needful_a for_o the_o body_n be_v take_v from_o they_o seek_v first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o 33._o heaven_n &_o all_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v minister_v unto_o you_o bread_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a where_o man_n will_v not_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n offer_v unto_o they_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o will_v have_v shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o despise_v the_o pleasure_n of_o heaven_n proclaim_v and_o preach_v by_o the_o gospel_n the_o blind_a world_n blame_v the_o gospel_n most_o gospel_n wrongful_o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o man_n be_v plague_v with_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n but_o we_o see_v the_o true_a cause_n be_v the_o persecution_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o the_o jew_n of_o old_a ignorant_o glory_v as_o the_o papist_n do_v now_o that_o there_o be_v wealth_n enough_o when_o they_o worship_v the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n 17._o and_o infidel_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n impute_v famine_n pest_n and_o such_o like_a to_o the_o christian_n but_o here_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o wealth_n and_o of_o want_n be_v discover_v to_o us._n and_o yet_o still_o they_o object_n that_o famine_n and_o ethnic_n pestilence_n can_v be_v plague_n send_v upon_o the_o world_n for_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o preacher_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o they_o but_o this_o be_v easy_o answer_v for_o good_a man_n and_o it_o evil_a as_o in_o one_o and_o the_o self-fame_n action_n so_o also_o in_o one_o and_o the_o self-fame_n passion_n be_v far_o different_a one_o from_o another_o cain_n and_o abel_n sacrifice_v yet_o be_v the_o one_o accept_v the_o other_o reject_v their_o hand_n wrought_v alike_o but_o not_o their_o heart_n judas_n say_v i_o have_v sin_v in_o betray_v christ_n peter_n i_o have_v sin_v in_o deny_v christ_n alike_o in_o confession_n but_o not_o in_o contrition_n and_o confidence_n two_o unlike_a malefactor_n crucify_v with_o christ_n the_o one_o continue_v in_o his_o sin_n blaspheme_v he_o the_o other_o by_o grace_n convert_v from_o his_o sin_n bless_v he_o there_o you_o have_v in_o like_a action_n and_o like_a passion_n a_o unlike_a disposition_n quicunque_fw-la boni_fw-la malique_fw-la pariter_fw-la afflict●…_n 8._o sunt_fw-la non_fw-la ideo_fw-la ipsi_fw-la distincti_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la quia_fw-la distinctum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la utrique_fw-la perpessi_fw-la sunt_fw-la manet_fw-la tamen_fw-la dissimilitudo_fw-la passorum_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o similitudine_fw-la passionum_fw-la &_o licet_fw-la sub_fw-la eodem_fw-la tormento_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la idem_fw-la virtus_fw-la &_o vitium_fw-la good_a and_o evil_a man_n be_v not_o therefore_o not_o distinguish_v because_o it_o be_v not_o distinguish_v which_o they_o suffer_v there_o be_v a_o great_a dissimilitude_n of_o the_o sufferer_n even_o in_o the_o similitude_n of_o suffering_n and_o under_o one_o and_o the_o self-fame_n torment_n yet_o be_v not_o virtue_n and_o vice_n one_o and_o the_o same_o the_o same_o answer_n before_o he_o give_v cyprian_n to_o the_o ethnic_n when_o they_o object_v the_o like_a to_o christian_n think_v not_o say_v he_o that_o you_o and_o we_o because_o we_o both_o suffer_v in_o the_o like_a affliction_n be_v therefore_o alike_o when_o we_o be_v strike_v like_o you_o yet_o be_v we_o not_o like_a ne_fw-fr pute_fw-la participem_fw-la esse_fw-la poenae_fw-la tuus_fw-la quem_fw-la non_fw-la vides_fw-la participem_fw-la doloris_fw-la tui_fw-la think_v he_o not_o partaker_n of_o thy_o punishment_n who_o thou_o see_v not_o partaker_n of_o thy_o pain_n note_v now_o the_o rider_n on_o this_o black_a horse_n be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o balance_n in_o his_o hand_n first_o in_o token_n of_o penury_n and_o scarcity_n he_o give_v bread_n unto_o man_n not_o bread_n by_o measure_n but_o by_o weight_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o curse_n threaten_v in_o the_o law_n when_o i_o shall_v break_v 6._o the_o staff_n of_o your_o bread_n than_o ten_o woman_n shall_v bake_v your_o bread_n in_o one_o oven_n and_o they_o shall_v deliver_v your_o bread_n again_o by_o weight_n and_o you_o shall_v eat_v and_o not_o be_v satisfy_v a_o token_n of_o great_a scarcity_n when_o in_o one_o oven_n as_o much_o bread_n be_v bake_v as_o must_v serve_v seven_o family_n and_o which_o yet_o be_v worse_o they_o shall_v eat_v and_o not_o be_v satisfy_v second_o the_o balance_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o who_o judgement_n bring_v this_o plague_n of_o famine_n note_v the_o equity_n of_o god_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o judgement_n he_o make_v his_o plague_n proportional_a to_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o in_o punish_v they_o do_v nothing_o unrighteous_o hitherto_o tend_v these_o borrow_a speech_n of_o line_n measure_n and_o cup_n use_v in_o holy_a scripture_n to_o express_v the_o moderation_n and_o equity_n of_o god_n even_o in_o punish_v he_o keep_v a_o measure_n a_o rule_n and_o order_n but_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o mercy_n it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o our_o best_a service_n be_v not_o worth_a the_o least_o of_o his_o mercy_n our_o recompense_n be_v not_o by_o line_n nor_o measure_n but_o as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v a_o good_a measure_n press_v down_o and_o shake_v together_o 28._o and_o run_v over_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o the_o lord_n shall_v do_v to_o we_o abundant_o above_o all_o we_o can_v ask_v or_o think_v much_o more_o above_o all_o that_o we_o have_v do_v verse_n 6._o and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n say_v a_o measure_n of_o wheat_n for_o a_o penny_n and_o three_o measure_n of_o barley_n for_o a_o penny_n and_o oil_n and_o wine_n hurt_v thou_o not_o now_o follow_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o former_a speech_n type_n wherein_o by_o a_o proclamation_n from_o the_o throne_n or_o the_o lamb_n that_o sit_v thereon_o the_o plague_n threaten_v here_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v famine_n &_o dearth_n the_o choenix_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o interpreter_n be_v such_o a_o measure_n of_o dry_a corn_n as_o may_v serve_v to_o be_v bread_n for_o a_o day_n unto_o one_o man_n the_o penny_n again_o be_v the_o ordinary_a wage_n of_o a_o common_a labourer_n for_o a_o day_n as_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o 20._o vineyard_n and_o those_o who_o labour_v in_o it_o so_o great_a then_o shall_v the_o dearth_n be_v that_o a_o man_n labour_v all_o the_o day_n long_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o gain_v no_o more_o bread_n
forehead_n and_o for_o confirmation_n thereof_o they_o cite_v augustine_n what_o use_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n have_v among_o the_o ancient_n we_o be_v not_o 43._o now_o to_o dispute_v but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v this_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v a_o childish_a crosse._n and_o ridiculous_a folly_n for_o the_o seal_n of_o god_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n elect_n and_o so_o can_v be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n wherewith_o many_o reprobate_n may_v be_v mark_v qui_fw-la malè_fw-la operatur_fw-la 215._o si_fw-la se_fw-la emendare_fw-la noluerit_fw-la quando_fw-la se_fw-la signat_fw-la peccatum_fw-la illius_fw-la non_fw-la minuitur_fw-la sed_fw-la augetur_fw-la he_o who_o live_v evil_a and_o amend_v not_o when_o he_o sign_v himself_o his_o sin_n be_v not_o diminish_v but_o augment_v and_o again_o nesciunt_fw-la miseri_fw-la quod_fw-la dum_fw-la ibid._n se_fw-la signant_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr malo_fw-la opere_fw-la se_fw-la non_fw-la revocant_fw-la includunt_fw-la in_o se_fw-la daemon_n magis_fw-la quam_fw-la excludunt_fw-la those_o miserable_a man_n who_o will_v not_o recall_v themselves_o from_o do_v of_o evil_a and_o yet_o will_v sign_n themselves_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n they_o know_v not_o that_o by_o so_o do_v they_o rather_o include_v devil_n within_o they_o then_o exclude_v they_o so_o that_o the_o only_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n can_v be_v this_o seal_n of_o god_n wherewith_o none_o but_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v mark_v now_o that_o we_o may_v know_v what_o it_o be_v let_v we_o consider_v another_o that_o a_o seal_n be_v a_o note_n of_o appropriation_n whereby_o a_o man_n mark_v that_o which_o be_v his_o own_o with_o his_o own_o mark_n that_o it_o may_v be_v discern_v from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o he_o thus_o merchant_n put_v their_o mark_n on_o their_o own_o ware_n in_o a_o ship_n and_o shepherd_n likewise_o put_v their_o mark_n on_o their_o own_o sheep_n to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o other_o of_o the_o flock_n which_o be_v not_o they_o it_o import_v seal_n also_o a_o conform_v of_o the_o thing_n seal_v unto_o the_o scale_n wherewith_o it_o be_v seal_v as_o we_o shall_v hear_v hitherto_o tend_v that_o of_o saint_n augustine_n signare_fw-la 25._o quid_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la proprium_fw-la aliquid_fw-la ponere_fw-la ideo_fw-la rei_fw-la ponis_fw-la signum_fw-la ne_fw-la res_fw-la cum_fw-la aliis_fw-la confusa_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la agnosci_fw-la what_o be_v it_o to_o seal_v a_o thing_n but_o to_o put_v something_o or_o some_o note_n of_o thy_o own_o upon_o it_o whereby_o it_o may_v be_v discern_v from_o other_o the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o have_v seal_v the_o son_n the_o father_n son_n again_o be_v say_v to_o seal_v his_o saint_n and_o servant_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o first_o be_v clear_a for_o he_o have_v the_o father_n seal_v that_o be_v proprium_fw-la quiddam_fw-la 6._o dedit_fw-la ne_fw-la caeteris_fw-la comparetur_fw-la hominibus_fw-la he_o ibid._n give_v he_o something_o of_o his_o own_o to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o other_o man_n it_o be_v true_a the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v way_n a_o man_n indeed_o yet_o such_o as_o have_v a_o incomparable_a note_n of_o super-excellence_n above_o other_o man_n for_o this_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n christ_n have_v it_o first_o essential_o essential_o then_o ministerial_o essential_o he_o have_v it_o for_o he_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n and_o 15._o engrave_v character_n of_o his_o person_n he_o have_v life_n in_o 3._o 26._o himself_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o he_o have_v it_o also_o as_o mediator_n ministerial_o to_o communicate_v ministerial_o it_o unto_o other_o not_o in_o that_o degree_n whereby_o he_o possess_v it_o himself_o that_o be_v impossible_a but_o in_o a_o certain_a similitude_n for_o he_o give_v life_n to_o 21._o who_o he_o will_v as_o the_o father_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_n and_o thus_o he_o seal_v his_o own_o by_o imprint_v in_o they_o his_o own_o similitude_n and_o image_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n what_o then_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n but_o the_o be_v image_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n stamp_v and_o engrave_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o saint_n this_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o plain_o it_o be_v god_n who_o stablish_v we_o with_o you_o in_o christ_n and_o 22._o have_v anoint_v we_o and_o have_v seal_v we_o and_o have_v give_v the_o earnest_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o again_o 13._o after_o that_o you_o believe_v you_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n and_o yet_o again_o grieve_v not_o the_o 30._o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n by_o who_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n of_o all_o these_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n stamp_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o child_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n this_o be_v our_o first_o glory_n that_o we_o be_v create_v glory_n to_o the_o image_n of_o our_o god_n satan_n and_o ourselves_o do_v miserable_o deface_v it_o but_o now_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o jesus_n in_o our_o redemption_n it_o be_v again_o gracious_o restore_v they_o who_o want_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v his_o away_o 23._o from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n i_o know_v you_o not_o and_o if_o we_o ourselves_o will_v know_v whether_o this_o seal_n have_v stamp_v we_o or_o not_o let_v we_o look_v to_o our_o own_o disposition_n for_o every_o seal_n leave_v such_o a_o imprint_v form_n in_o that_o which_o it_o seal_v as_o it_o have_v in_o itself_o the_o lord_n be_v holy_a he_o be_v light_a he_o be_v just_a merciful_a meek_a long-suffering_a if_o us._n he_o have_v communicate_v his_o image_n to_o we_o then_o will_v he_o make_v we_o some_o way_n to_o resemble_v our_o father_n we_o shall_v become_v holy_a light_a in_o the_o lord_n righteous_a towards_o all_o man_n merciful_a meek_a long-suffering_a and_o ready_a to_o forgive_v for_o what_o else_o be_v christianisinus_fw-la christian●…_n but_o imitatio_fw-la divinae_fw-la naturae_fw-la christianity_n but_o a_o imitation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o a_o word_n look_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n as_o 20._o they_o be_v reckon_v out_o and_o oppose_v to_o other_o by_o the_o apostle_n if_o the_o lord_n have_v seal_v we_o with_o his_o seal_n then_o shall_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v manifest_a in_o we_o if_o otherwise_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v predominant_a sure_o it_o be_v thou_o be_v not_o seal_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o such_o as_o be_v seal_v by_o he_o he_o make_v they_o like_a unto_o himself_o now_o this_o seal_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v it_o in_o their_o forehead_n forehead_n because_o it_o embolden_v they_o to_o stand_v to_o the_o public_a confession_n of_o christ_n first_o as_o i_o have_v show_v he_o seal_v they_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o next_o in_o their_o forehead_n no_o terror_n no_o entreatment_n can_v move_v they_o to_o deny_v the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o that_o deny_v i_o before_o man_n i_o shall_v deny_v he_o before_o 10._o my_o father_n in_o heaven_n i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o 1._o gospel_n of_o jesus_n say_v s._n paul_n innumerable_a proof_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o confessor_n and_o martyr_n of_o all_o time_n there_o be_v a_o notable_a example_n give_v hereof_o sanctus_n by_o sanctus_n the_o martyr_n in_o the_o persecution_n under_o commodus_n when_o it_o be_v demand_v of_o he_o what_o his_o name_n be_v he_o answer_v christianus_n sum_n and_o to_o all_o question_n demand_v of_o he_o of_o his_o country_n and_o parent_n he_o give_v only_o this_o answer_n christianus_n sum_n let_v we_o try_v ourselves_o whether_o we_o have_v this_o seal_n seal_n or_o not_o where_o we_o find_v a_o begin_n thereof_o let_v we_o careful_o conserve_v it_o that_o the_o lineament_n of_o that_o image_n be_v not_o deface_v by_o the_o deepness_n of_o satan_n and_o deceit_n of_o our_o own_o sinful_a corruption_n for_o the_o want_n of_o this_o seal_n will_v make_v the_o lord_n deny_v his_o own_o creature_n in_o that_o day_n depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n 27._o of_o iniquity_n i_o know_v you_o not_o the_o silver_n which_o be_v not_o strike_v with_o the_o king_n stamp_n be_v count_v adulterous_a and_o not_o receive_v in_o his_o treasure_n sic_fw-la anima_fw-la 30._o que_fw-la imaginem_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la in_fw-la coelestes_fw-la thesauros_fw-la non_fw-la ingredietur_fw-la so_o the_o soul_n which_o have_v not_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o heavenly_a treasure_n and_o he_o cry_v by_o his_o cry_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n 4._o nothing_o else_o be_v note_v
fifteen_o hundred_o thousand_o and_o more_o of_o man_n able_a to_o draw_v sword_n and_o here_o of_o all_o age_n only_o a_o us._n hundred_o and_o forty_o four_o thousand_o be_v seal_v to_o eternal_a life_n to_o teach_v we_o they_o be_v few_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o rest_n so_o augustine_n understand_v that_o place_n of_o 48._o jeremy_n i_o shall_v take_v you_o one_o of_o a_o city_n and_o two_o of_o a_o 14._o tribe_n and_o shall_v bring_v you_o to_o zion_n there_o be_v a_o narrow_a shift_a few_o be_v take_v in_o respect_n of_o they_o who_o be_v leave_v though_o the_o number_n of_o israel_n be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o 21._o the_o sea_n yet_o shall_v but_o a_o remnant_n be_v save_v this_o be_v 27._o more_o plain_o for_o all_o speak_v by_o our_o saviour_n it_o be_v 14._o the_o wide_a gate_n and_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n and_o many_o there_o be_v which_o go_v in_o there_o at_o but_o the_o gate_n be_v straight_o and_o the_o way_n be_v narrow_a that_o lead_v unto_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o this_o shall_v waken_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o ourselves_o the_o few_o they_o 10._o be_v who_o be_v to_o be_v save_v the_o more_o careful_a shall_v spirit_n we_o be_v to_o make_v sure_a our_o call_n and_o election_n by_o well_o do_v as_o to_o the_o order_n observe_v in_o the_o reckon_n out_o of_o these_o tribe_n we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o sometime_o they_o be_v reckon_v according_a to_o that_o order_n which_o jacob_n their_o father_n keep_v in_o blessing_n they_o sometime_o again_o they_o be_v reckon_v according_a to_o their_o excellency_n as_o here_o juda_n have_v the_o prerogative_n of_o dignity_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o lord_n spring_v out_o of_o juda_n sometime_o the_o order_n of_o their_o nativity_n be_v observe_v and_o so_o aaron_n have_v they_o grave_v in_o twelve_o precious_a stone_n upon_o his_o breast_n to_o present_v they_o unto_o the_o lord_n figure_v by_o a_o swee_a relation_n the_o lord_n jesus_n present_v his_o saint_n to_o the_o father_n in_o more_o effectual_a and_o comfortable_a a_o manner_n and_o then_o reuben_n be_v first_o simeon_n second_o levi_n three_o juda_n heaven_n four_o but_o here_o they_o be_v not_o so_o number_v for_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n prerogative_n of_o birth_n or_o blood_n will_v not_o be_v respect_v it_o be_v good_a reason_n that_o in_o this_o life_n such_o dignity_n shall_v make_v a_o distinction_n among_o man_n and_o cause_n one_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o another_o but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o there_o there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o grecian_a there_o be_v neither_o 28._o bond_n nor_o free_a there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a for_o you_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n verse_n 5._o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o reuben_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o gad_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o verse_n 6._o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o aser_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o nephtali_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o manasse_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o verse_n 7._o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o simeon_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o issachar_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o zabulon_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o verse_n 8._o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o joseph_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o concern_v these_o tribe_n it_o be_v needless_a for_o we_o to_o speak_v particular_o of_o that_o which_o may_v be_v find_v write_v of_o they_o in_o the_o holy_a story_n primasius_n and_o other_o run_v out_o here_o upon_o allegory_n not_o very_o pertinent_a to_o this_o purpose_n we_o will_v only_o speak_v a_o little_a of_o the_o nomination_n of_o levi_n and_o the_o omission_n of_o dan._n levi_n have_v no_o inheritance_n in_o earthly_a canaan_n canaan_n they_o be_v disperse_v in_o juda_n and_o scatter_v in_o israel_n that_o they_o may_v teach_v jacob_n the_o judgement_n and_o israel_n the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o now_o have_v they_o their_o portion_n in_o heavenly_a canaan_n with_o the_o rest_n let_v this_o serve_v for_o a_o comfort_n to_o the_o lord_n servant_n who_o 10._o be_v set_v over_o other_o to_o teach_v they_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n here_o and_o to_o minister_v spiritual_a thing_n unto_o they_o who_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o requite_v they_o with_o corporal_a entertainment_n of_o their_o worldly_a thing_n what_o thou_o want_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n the_o lord_n shall_v recompense_v it_o laban_n defraud_v jacob_n of_o his_o wage_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o serve_v he_o faithful_o but_o the_o lord_n pay_v he_o and_o recompense_v all_o his_o loss_n again_o albeit_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n as_o we_o have_v say_v preacher_n have_v the_o charge_n to_o teach_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n yet_o be_v no_o more_o seal_v then_o of_o other_o tribe_n all_o be_v teacher_n but_o all_o be_v not_o seal_v hereof_o arise_v a_o caution_n for_o preacher_n and_o a_o comfort_n for_o professor_n they_o be_v not_o all_o save_v who_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a call_n not_o all_o priest_n not_o all_o prophet_n not_o all_o apostle_n not_o all_o preacher_n à_fw-fr profane_a man_n may_v be_v in_o the_o holy_a call_n but_o will_v it_o profit_v he_o no_o more_o than_o the_o ark_n do_v ophni_n and_o phinees_n yet_o preacher_n if_o they_o be_v faithful_a shall_v not_o want_n their_o great_a reward_n for_o they_o who_o turn_v many_o to_o 2._o righteousness_n shall_v shine_v as_o the_o star_n for_o ever_o professor_n again_o let_v they_o not_o be_v discourage_v preacher_n though_o they_o be_v not_o call_v to_o be_v preacher_n they_o be_v not_o of_o levi_n his_o tribe_n yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_a for_o their_o salvation_n if_o they_o be_v of_o juda_n his_o tribe_n and_o call_v to_o be_v saint_n neither_o shall_v they_o be_v deprive_v of_o this_o dignity_n to_o be_v fellow-helper_n 13._o of_o preacher_n if_o they_o love_v they_o pray_v for_o they_o help_v they_o counsel_v they_o comfort_v they_o that_o they_o may_v do_v the_o work_n of_o god_n with_o joy_n and_o not_o with_o grief_n so_o saint_n paul_n give_v this_o commendation_n to_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n that_o they_o be_v ●…his_n fellow-helper_n 16._o in_o christ_n they_o can_v not_o preach_v the_o gospel_n yet_o receive_v they_o this_o praise_n that_o they_o be_v saint_n paul_n his_o fellow-helper_n in_o preach_v now_o as_o concern_v the_o omission_n of_o dan_n the_o omit_v reason_n of_o this_o give_v by_o jesuit_n be_v because_o as_o they_o allege_v antichrist_n be_v to_o come_v of_o dan._n but_o with_o as_o good_a a_o warrant_n may_v they_o say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v of_o ephraim_n for_o he_o be_v omit_v also_o antichrist_n say_v they_o shall_v come_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o no_o soon_o at_o this_o time_n the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n have_v not_o bring_v out_o the_o antichrist_n and_o will_v jesuit_n have_v confute_v the_o lord_n here_o to_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o dignity_n for_o sin_n to_o be_v do_v it_o be_v a_o common_a equity_n which_o the_o lord_n keep_v in_o all_o his_o way_n the_o sin_n be_v first_o commit_v by_o the_o wicked_a before_o that_o judgement_n by_o the_o lord_n be_v execute_v upon_o they_o he_o have_v spare_v wicked_a man_n as_o he_o do_v the_o amalekite_n 2._o many_o year_n after_o they_o have_v sin_v they_o sin_v in_o the_o day_n of_o moses_n they_o be_v punish_v in_o the_o day_n of_o samuel_n four_o hundred_o year_n after_o but_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v punish_v a_o people_n sixteen_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o before_o they_o commit_v the_o sin_n as_o this_o dote_a divinity_n of_o jesuit_n will_v make_v we_o to_o believe_v it_o have_v not_o be_v hear_v and_o be_v without_o all_o example_n antichrist_n but_o when_o the_o jew_n shall_v get_v another_o christ_n for_o who_o they_o look_v to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n then_o shall_v the_o jesuit_n get_v another_o antichrist_n for_o who_o they_o look_v out_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n and_o that_o shall_v never_o be_v they_o cite_v ambrose_n for_o confirmation_n of_o their_o opinion_n benidict_n he_o say_v it_o indeed_o but_o show_v no_o warrant_n for_o 7._o it_o we_o willing_o embrace_v the_o father_n gold_n but_o will_v not_o gather_v their_o dross_n according_a to_o that_o ancient_a rule_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n doctor_n shall_v be_v receive_v 23._o with_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o must_v not_o with_o the_o doctor_n
multitude_n for_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n can_v number_v they_o next_o their_o variety_n they_o be_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o people_n three_o their_o unity_n in_o their_o action_n and_o song_n common_a to_o they_o all_o these_o three_o coniunct_o do_v great_o augment_v the_o glory_n and_o felicity_n of_o saint_n redeem_v as_o for_o their_o multitude_n the_o lord_n promise_v to_o multitude_n make_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n in_o number_n like_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n some_o of_o the_o father_n 17._o by_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n will_v have_v israelites_n to_o be_v figure_v and_o by_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n gentile_n however_o 〈…〉_z that_o be_v it_o be_v plain_a out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o number_n of_o elect_a gentile_n do_v far_o exceed_v the_o number_n of_o elect_a jew_n multitude_n as_o i_o say_v do_v great_o increase_v the_o saint_n glory_n of_o saint_n every_o one_o of_o they_o by_o themselves_o be_v beautiful_a glorious_a and_o marvellous_a creature_n but_o all_o of_o they_o coniunct_o in_o one_o multitude_n and_o fellowship_n make_v their_o beauty_n and_o glory_n far_o great_a for_o one_o of_o they_o hinder_v not_o another_o one_o of_o they_o derogate_v not_o from_o another_o it_o be_v so_o with_o multitude_n of_o man_n on_o earth_n but_o not_o so_o with_o the_o multitude_n of_o saint_n in_o heaven_n the_o more_o in_o number_n they_o be_v the_o great_a be_v the_o joy_n &_o glory_n of_o all_o thus_o in_o the_o first_o creation_n the_o lord_n consider_v every_o one_o of_o his_o work_n several_o say_v of_o they_o and_o 31._o the_o lord_n see_v it_o be_v good_a but_o when_o he_o look_v upon_o all_o coniunct_o than_o it_o be_v say_v and_o god_n see_v all_o that_o he_o have_v make_v &_o lo_o it_o be_v very_o good_a their_o variety_n be_v variety_n note_v here_o that_o they_o be_v of_o all_o nation_n kindred_n people_n &_o tongue_n and_o yet_o their_o variety_n be_v no_o impediment_n to_o their_o unity_n for_o they_o all_o sing_v one_o song_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v short_o of_o this_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o church_n roman_a in_o not_o bind_v to_o any_o one_o nation_n or_o place_n as_o the_o donatist_n of_o old_a will_v have_v it_o include_v in_o such_o place_n of_o afric_n as_o please_v they_o and_o papist_n now_o will_v acknowledge_v no_o church_n but_o roman_a shall_v church_n of_o other_o nation_n &_o tongue_n be_v no_o church_n because_o they_o be_v not_o roman_a i_o know_v all_o church_n be_v of_o one_o communion_n but_o the_o band_n of_o their_o communion_n be_v their_o faith_n in_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o they_o all_o and_o not_o their_o profession_n of_o subjection_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v but_o the_o beast_n his_o usurpation_n and_o can_v no_o way_n be_v show_v or_o prove_v to_o descend_v from_o divine_a dispensation_n shall_v that_o most_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o east_n compose_v roman_a of_o grecian_n a_o nation_n acknowledge_v by_o her_o adversary_n to_o be_v a_o mother_n church_n in_o who_o language_n the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v of_o syrian_n trident._n in_o which_o tongue_n the_o son_n of_o god_n pronounce_v his_o oracle_n of_o slavonian_n russian_n 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o in_o who_o bosom_n be_v almost_o all_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o in_o who_o jurisdiction_n be_v celebrate_v soven_v universal_a councel●…_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d east_n church_n i_o say_v be_v no_o church_n because_o it_o speak_v not_o the_o roman_a tongue_n or_o shall_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n precedent_n thereof_o be_v no_o patriarch_n because_o he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n no_o sure_o it_o be_v many_o thousand_o of_o good_a christian_n be_v among_o they_o or_o shall_v the_o south_n roman_a church_n which_o contain_v the_o nubian_o &_o the_o abyssine_n subject_n of_o the_o king_n of_o ethiop_n otherwise_o call_v prester-iohn_n beside_o many_o other_o sca●…ered_v in_o egypt_n arabia_n caldea_n with_o their_o primate_n resident_a in_o cairo_n call_v patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o his_o deputy_n or_o substitute_n in_o ethiop_n call_v abu●…_n that_o be_v our_o father_n who_o look_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n &_o have_v their_o leiturgy_n not_o so_o agreeable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o church_n reform_v and_o beside_o those_o shall_v the_o like_a christian_n of_o tartary_n in_o the_o north_n pers●…_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o east_n indies_n with_o their_o prelate_n resident_a at_o seleucia_n shall_v all_o these_o be_v no_o church_n no_o christian_n sith_o they_o hold_v the_o christian_a faith_n suppose_v with_o different_a ceremony_n shall_v these_o be_v reject_v because_o they_o be_v not_o roman_a and_o profess_v not_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o church_n reform_v in_o germany_n heretical_a england_n scotland_n france_n flanders_n swethia_n poland_n i_o know_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n account_v these_o for_o heretical_a but_o it_o be_v now_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o year_n since_o reinerius_n a_o inquisitor_n give_v unto_o they_o this_o testimony_n atlea_v to_o their_o father_n and_o predecessor_n they_o call_v they_o waldenses_n 17_o leonistae_n and_o by_o other_o such_o like_a opprobrious_a name_n but_o this_o sect_n have_v be_v of_o long_a continuance_n than_o any_o other_o for_o some_o say_v it_o have_v endure_v since_o the_o time_n of_o silvester_n other_o say_v it_o have_v endure_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n second_o it_o be_v more_o general_a than_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v almost_o no_o land_n to_o which_o this_o sect_n do_v not_o creep_v three_o all_o other_o sect_n do_v bring_v in_o a_o horror_n with_o the_o heinousness_n of_o their_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n but_o this_o sect_n of_o the_o leonist_n have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o godliness_n because_o they_o live_v just_o before_o man_n and_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o concern_v god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o they_o blaspheme_v and_o hate_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o then_o to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n of_o gentile_n be_v to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o but_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v in_o her_o bosom_n some_o of_o all_o nation_n kindred_n people_n and_o tongue_n who_o keep_v the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n and_o be_v not_o for_o that_o no_o christian_n because_o not_o roman_a stand_v before_o the_o throne_n their_o stand_n note_v thing_n their_o firmness_n and_o stability_n in_o glory_n they_o shall_v never_o fall_v from_o it_o again_o adam_n be_v create_v in_o a_o glory_n happy_a estate_n he_o continue_v not_o long_o in_o it_o he_o have_v his_o salvation_n in_o his_o own_o keep_n and_o he_o easy_o lose_v it_o but_o with_o saint_n redeem_v it_o be_v not_o so_o second_o god_n it_o note_n that_o they_o be_v in_o great_a favour_n with_o the_o lord_n gracious_a and_o acceptable_a to_o he_o they_o be_v not_o licence_v to_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o prince_n with_o who_o prince_n be_v displease_v therefore_o haman_n when_o they_o see_v the_o king_n angry_a with_o he_o they_o cover_v his_o face_n and_o carry_v he_o out_o to_o the_o gibbet_n and_o hang_v he_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o chapter_n the_o wicked_a cry_v out_o who_o can_v stand_v but_o here_o saint_n be_v bring_v in_o stand_v before_o the_o throne_n for_o the_o lord_n love_v they_o he_o delight_v in_o his_o saint_n yea_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n and_o diadem_n of_o 5._o beauty_n to_o his_o people_n but_o of_o this_o god_n will_v more_o hereafter_o and_o three_o their_o stand_n may_v impor●…_n their_o promptness_n and_o readiness_n to_o attend_v the_o praise_n and_o the_o service_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n clothe_v in_o long_a white_a robe_n the_o white_a robe_n be_v purity_n ascribe_v to_o they_o to_o note_v first_o that_o they_o be_v holy_a pure_a and_o undefiled_a for_o christ_n love_v his_o church_n 27._o and_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o and_o cleanse_v it_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n that_o he_o make_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n so_o be_v the_o soul_n glorify_v in_o heaven_n and_o so_o shall_v our_o body_n be_v also_o without_o any_o spot_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o therefore_o represent_v to_o s._n john_n cover_v with_o 5._o white_a robe_n next_o the_o white_a robe_n have_v in_o it_o some_o signification_n glory_n of_o their_o bless_a estate_n in_o glory_n &_o immortality_n
the_o will_n and_o the_o 13._o deed_n and_o hereby_o may_v you_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n in_o deed_n mercy_n be_v work_v your_o salvation_n when_o he_o work_v in_o you_o both_o a_o will_n and_o a_o deed_n to_o do_v all_o that_o you_o can_v that_o you_o may_v be_v save_v sorrow_v for_o sin_n past_a ever_o fearful_a for_o sin_n to_o come_v continual_a in_o prayer_n fervent_a in_o thanksgiving_n and_o every_o way_n careful_a to_o keep_v yourselves_o in_o your_o spirit_n and_o so_o 15._o to_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o god_n and_o under_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o love_n their_o garment_n or_o their_o robe_n here_o come_v garmen●…_n to_o be_v consider_v see_v the_o garment_n of_o saint_n be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o that_o put_v you_o on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o again_o christ_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o righteousness_n how_o be_v it_o that_o their_o garment_n 13._o need_v wash_v truth_n it_o be_v indeed_o the_o righteousness_n of_o jesus_n impute_v to_o we_o by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v be_v perfect_a holy_a like_a unto_o himself_o without_o all_o spot_n or_o blemish_n but_o our_o inherent_a righteousness_n only_o which_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o work_v in_o we_o and_o whereby_o we_o be_v sanctify_v in_o this_o life_n be_v imperfect_a &_o not_o without_o spot_n but_o all_o the_o defect_n thereof_o be_v destroy_v in_o death_n by_o the_o cleanse_n virtue_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n and_o we_o then_o shall_v be_v present_v blameless_a to_o the_o lord_n our_o lord_n have_v fulfil_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n for_o we_o but_o he_o shall_v also_o fulfil_v 3._o it_o in_o we_o and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o here_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o wash_n of_o their_o garment_n and_o make_v they_o white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o etc._n etc._n the_o lamb_n lamb_n as_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n his_o disciple_n be_v also_o call_v lamb_n behold_v i_o send_v you_o 10._o forth_o as_o lamb_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o wolf_n yea_o all_o christian_n be_v so_o call_v peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o lamb_n they_o be_v also_o call_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n but_o not_o that_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n that_o 9_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o so_o he_o be_v call_v a_o lamb_n sense_n in_o a_o special_a respect_n agnus_n singulariter_fw-la solus_fw-la sine_fw-la macula_fw-la non_fw-la cvius_fw-la maculae_fw-la abstersae_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed_fw-la cvius_fw-la macula_fw-la 7._o nulla_fw-la fuerit_fw-la only_o without_o spot_n not_o because_o they_o be_v wash_v away_o but_o because_o he_o have_v none_o to_o wash_v away_o agnus_n quem_fw-la lupi_fw-la timent_fw-la qui_fw-la l●…onem_fw-la occisus_fw-la ibid._n occidit_fw-la a_o lamb_n of_o who_o wolf_n be_v afraid_a and_o who_o be_v slay_v slay_v the_o lyon_n but_o of_o he_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o as_o to_o his_o blood_n the_o efficacy_n thereof_o appear_v in_o it_o this_o that_o it_o be_v medicinal_a to_o they_o who_o shed_v it_o the_o same_o jew_n of_o who_o s._n peter_n say_v that_o they_o crucify_v christ_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o cross_n be_v 4._o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n three_o thousand_o of_o they_o at_o one_o sermon_n ipsoredempti_n sanguine_a quem_fw-la 92._o fuderunt_fw-la redeem_v by_o the_o same_o blood_n which_o themselves_o shed_v sic_fw-la enim_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguis_fw-la in_o remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la jesus_n est_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsum_fw-la etiam_fw-la peccatum_fw-la del●…re_fw-la possit_fw-la quofusus_fw-la est_fw-la for_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n shed_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o put_v away_o that_o same_o sin_n by_o which_o it_o be_v shed_v what_o a_o wonder_n be_v this_o the_o physician_n come_v to_o wonderful_a cure_v a_o frantic_a patient_n the_o frantic_a slay_v the_o physician_n and_o yet_o the_o physician_n of_o his_o blood_n make_v a_o sufficient_a medicine_n to_o cure_v the_o frantic_a qualis_fw-la insania_fw-la eius_fw-la qui_fw-la medicum_fw-la occidit_fw-la quanta_fw-la verò_fw-la 8._o bonitas_fw-la &_o potentia_fw-la medici_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la sanguine_fw-la svo_fw-la insano_fw-la interfectori_fw-la svo_fw-la medicamentum_fw-la fecit_fw-la o_o how_o great_a be_v his_o madness_n who_o slay_v his_o mediciner_n and_o how_o great_a be_v the_o goodness_n and_o power_n of_o the_o mediciner_n who_o of_o his_o own_o blood_n have_v make_v a_o heal_a medicament_n to_o he_o that_o shed_v it_o yea_o the_o very_a manner_n of_o phrase_n use_v by_o the_o signior_n cleanse_v or_o elder_a le_fw-fr we_o we_o see_v how_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n be_v full_a of_o miracle_n for_o be_v not_o this_o strange_a that_o where_o all_o other_o blood_n defile_v and_o pollute_v that_o whereupon_o it_o light_v this_o blood_n purify_v and_o cleanse_v they_o on_o who_o it_o light_v other_o blood_n make_v the_o white_a linen_n ugly_a unpleasant_a and_o loathsome_a to_o behold_v but_o this_o blood_n make_v a_o menstruous_a cloth_n pleasant_a &_o white_a though_o your_o sin_n be_v as_o crimson_a 18._o they_o shall_v be_v make_v white_a as_o snow_n though_o they_o be_v red_a as_o scarlet_a they_o shall_v be_v make_v white_a as_o wool_n but_o to_o this_o cleanse_n of_o we_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o spiritual_a the_o natural_a or_o corporal_a sprinkle_n of_o that_o blood_n upon_o we_o no_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o that_o blood_n that_o purify_v we_o be_v spiritual_a let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o 10._o true_a heart_n in_o assurance_n of_o faith_n sprinkle_v in_o our_o heart_n from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n no_o word_n here_o be_v as_o we_o see_v of_o any_o papal_a purgation_n pollution_n indulgence_n or_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n or_o holy_a water_n these_o be_v the_o merchandise_n and_o ware_n of_o whorish_a babel_n such_o trumpery_n be_v not_o know_v in_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n only_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n must_v wash_v thou_o all_o other_o wash_n pollute_v and_o defile_v thou_o though_o thou_o wash_v thou_o with_o ●…itre_n and_o take_v thou_o 22._o much_o soap_n yet_o thy_o iniquity_n be_v mark_v before_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n cleanse_v we_o from_o 7._o all_o sin_n with_o scripture_n father_n be_v consonant_a to_o cry_v father_n out_o against_o this_o blasphemous_a purgation_n of_o sin_n by_o any_o infernal_a fire_n piorum_fw-la anim●…_n recta_fw-la in_o beatas_fw-la se●…es_fw-la impiorum_fw-la in_o gehennam_fw-la abeunt_fw-la the_o soul_n of_o milcui●…inus_n godly_a man_n go_v the_o high_a way_n into_o heaven_n the_o wicked_a straight_o unto_o hell_n anima_fw-la ubicunque_fw-la e●…olaverit_n 22._o è_fw-la corpore_fw-la aut_fw-la à_fw-la daemonibus_fw-la in_o infernum_fw-la aut_fw-la ab_fw-la angelis_n in_fw-la coelum_fw-la abrip●…tur_fw-la the_o soul_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o flee_v out_o of_o the_o body_n be_v either_o reave_v and_o carry_v to_o hell_n by_o devil_n or_o to_o heaven_n by_o angel_n sin_n they_o grant_v be_v forgive_v here_o but_o the_o punishment_n of_o it_o must_v be_v sustain_v there_o against_o this_o let_v they_o mark_v what_o s._n cyprian_n say_v quando_fw-la istine_a excessum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la de●…_n nullus_fw-la iam_fw-la poenitenti●…_n locus_fw-la nullus_fw-la satisfactionis_fw-la effectus_fw-la vita_fw-la hic_fw-la aut_fw-la tenetur_fw-la aut_fw-la amittitur_fw-la from_o the_o time_n we_o go_v out_o of_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o more_o place_n of_o repentance_n nor_o effect_n of_o satisfaction_n by_o suffer_v here_o life_n be_v either_o keep_v or_o lose_v qualem_fw-la te_fw-la invenit_fw-la deus_fw-la cum_fw-la immort_a vocat_fw-la talem_fw-la pariter_fw-la &_o indicat_fw-la such_o as_o god_n find_v thou_o when_o by_o death_n he_o call_v on_o thou_o such_o he_o judge_n thou_o vnusquisque_fw-la cum_fw-la causa_fw-la sua_fw-la dormit_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la causa_fw-la 49._o sua_fw-la resurget_fw-la every_o man_n sleep_v with_o his_o cause_n and_o with_o his_o cause_n shall_v he_o rise_v again_o there_o be_v no_o change_v nor_o better_v of_o it_o between_o his_o death_n and_o his_o resurrection_n postquam_fw-la discesserimus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la ●…azaro_fw-la situm_fw-la poenitere_fw-la neque_fw-la commissadiluere_fw-la from_o time_n we_o go_v out_o of_o this_o life_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o repent_v nor_o to_o wash_v away_o the_o sin_n which_o we_o have_v do_v it_o be_v tedious_a to_o rehearse_v all_o and_o therefore_o i_o return_v &_o conclude_v this_o point_n virtue_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o threefold_a virtue_n first_o a_o purge_a virtue_n next_o a_o protect_a virtue_n virtue_n three_o a_o pacify_v virtue_n what_o need_n have_v we_o they_o of_o any_o other_o thing_n or_o to_o seek_v any_o other_o merit_n or_o blood_n beside_o he_o of_o his_o purge_a virtue_n we_o have_v virtue_n speak_v already_o his_o protect_a
the_o assembly_n of_o his_o saint_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n but_o this_o presence_n be_v not_o perceive_v but_o of_o his_o own_o secret_a one_o who_o seek_v his_o face_n the_o presence_n of_o his_o glory_n be_v give_v to_o saint_n triumphant_a heaven_n in_o the_o heaven_n the_o lord_n give_v grace_n and_o glory_n but_o first_o grace_n and_o then_o glory_n from_o grace_n in_o earth_n yea_o and_o by_o it_o he_o lead_v they_o up_o to_o glory_n 11._o in_o heaven_n of_o this_o presence_n of_o glory_n this_o place_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o that_o in_o thy_o face_n be_v the_o fullness_n 11._o of_o joy_n and_o at_o thy_o right_a hand_n be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o and_o again_o o_o how_o excellent_a be_v they_o mercy_n o_o god_n therefore_o the_o child_n of_o man_n trust_v under_o the_o 9_o shadow_n of_o thy_o wing_n they_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o fatness_n of_o thy_o house_n and_o thou_o shall_v give_v they_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o river_n of_o thy_o pleasure_n here_o not_o only_o have_v fountain_n we_o pleasure_n but_o river_n of_o pleasure_n yet_o such_o as_o can_v never_o be_v exhaust_v for_o it_o be_v subjoin_v with_o thou_o be_v the_o well_o of_o life_n so_o long_o as_o the_o fountain_n or_o spring_n last_v the_o river_n can_v decay_v god_n be_v that_o great_a fountain_n or_o bottomless_a deep_a from_o he_o come_v the_o river_n of_o pleasure_n to_o all_o that_o stand_v about_o he_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n say_v of_o solomon_n 8._o his_o servant_n happy_a be_v thy_o man_n happy_a be_v these_o thy_o servant_n which_o stand_v ever_o before_o thou_o and_o hear_v thy_o wisdom_n but_o much_o more_o true_o may_v it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o servant_n of_o our_o god_n who_o stand_v about_o his_o throne_n bless_a be_v they_o who_o dwell_v in_o thy_o house_n 4._o now_o follow_v they_o serve_v he_o night_n and_o day_n in_o his_o temple_n intermission_n we_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o place_n wherein_o they_o be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o verse_n short_o describe_v their_o exercise_n they_o serve_v god_n and_o that_o without_o all_o faint_a weary_v or_o intermission_n night_n and_o day_n this_o import_v no_o vicissitude_n but_o a_o continuance_n and_o perpetuity_n die_v &_o nox_fw-la vicissitud●…nem_fw-la sed_fw-la sanct._n perpetuitatem_fw-la significant_a because_o all_o our_o time_n turn_v upon_o day_n and_o night_n therefore_o many_o a_o time_n use_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n this_o phrase_n day_n and_o night_n to_o express_v as_o much_o as_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o in_o the_o heaven_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o day_n no_o heaven_n change_n of_o their_o glorious_a and_o lightsome_a estate_n by_o time_n in_o the_o hell_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o night_n perpetual_a darkness_n no_o change_n of_o their_o horrible_a and_o comfortless_a estate_n by_o time_n in_o the_o earth_n there_o be_v a_o day_n and_o a_o night_n and_o a_o vicissitude_n and_o change_n of_o every_o estate_n by_o time_n that_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o a_o temple_n we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v there_o be_v any_o material_a temple_n in_o heaven_n but_o a_o allusion_n be_v make_v to_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n wherein_o his_o servant_n serve_v he_o day_n and_o night_n and_o this_o word_n of_o service_n note_v that_o they_o be_v laborious_a now_o full_o become_v the_o lord_n they_o have_v resign_v themselves_o altogether_o to_o do_v his_o will_n there_o be_v not_o now_o in_o they_o any_o deed_n nor_o desire_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v offend_v he_o they_o wait_v upon_o he_o they_o look_v steadfast_o to_o he_o they_o delight_v in_o he_o they_o praise_v he_o without_o cease_v this_o be_v their_o service_n non_fw-la est_fw-la labor●…osa_fw-la sed_fw-la amabilis_fw-la &_o optanda_fw-la haec_fw-la seruitus_fw-la ibid._n it_o be_v not_o a_o painful_a service_n or_o laborious_a but_o to_o be_v love_v and_o long_v for_o seruitus_fw-la h●…c_fw-la dulcissima_fw-la carthus_n merces_fw-la est_fw-la seruitutis_fw-la praesentis_fw-la laboriosae_fw-la this_o service_n be_v a_o most_o sweet_a reward_n of_o our_o present_a laborious_a service_n among_o man_n the_o name_n of_o a_o servant_n be_v count_v cre●…turos_fw-la unhonorable_a and_o a_o base_a thing_n think_v they_o it_o to_o serve_v another_o but_o since_o the_o most_o honourable_a creature_n elect_a angel_n and_o man_n delight_v to_o serve_v he_o let_v we_o not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o profess_v ourselves_o his_o servant_n david_n be_v a_o great_a king_n yet_o he_o count_v more_o and_o rejoice_v often_o in_o it_o that_o he_o be_v a_o servant_n of_o god_n than_o a_o king_n over_o his_o people_n and_o s._n paul_n be_v a_o choose_a vessel_n unto_o god_n 15._o yet_o his_o ordinary_a stile_n be_v paul_n the_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ._n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v more_o honourable_a to_o be_v a_o servant_n of_o christ_n then_o to_o be_v a_o monarch_n of_o the_o world_n without_o he_o seruire_fw-la deo_fw-la est_fw-la regnare_fw-la in_o servant_n very_a deed_n he_o be_v a_o freeman_n yea_o and_o a_o king_n who_o be_v god_n servant_n he_o trample_v under_o foot_n the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n he_o be_v lord_n of_o his_o affection_n yea_o and_o of_o all_o creature_n he_o can_v use_v they_o but_o will_v not_o come_v under_o the_o power_n of_o any_o of_o they_o and_o yet_o so_o blind_a be_v worldling_n that_o they_o account_v christ_n his_o service_n to_o be_v bondage_n &_o his_o law_n a_o yoke_n whereas_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o law_n ●…_n of_o liberty_n and_o man_n without_o it_o not_o subject_a to_o it_o be_v in_o most_o miserable_a bondage_n for_o he_o that_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o lord_n shall_v be_v god_n like_o curse_a cham_n a_o servant_n of_o servant_n he_o shall_v serve_v many_o master_n instead_o of_o one_o o_o quam_fw-la multos_fw-la dominos_fw-la habet_fw-la qui_fw-la unum_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la and_o that_o in_o a_o ambros._n service_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o comfort_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o reward_n and_o after_o which_o no_o time_n set_v for_o manumission_n or_o liberty_n any_o other_o servant_n that_o have_v a_o evil_a master_n sometime_o may_v be_v sell_v to_o another_o and_o he_o will_v be_v glad_a of_o it_o but_o the_o servant_n master_n of_o sin_n be_v so_o blind_v that_o albeit_o of_o all_o slau●…_n he_o be_v the_o most_o miserable_a yet_o he_o be_v content_a with_o it_o and_o desire_v not_o to_o change_v his_o master_n and_o again_o any_o other_o servant_n oppress_v with_o the_o tyranny_n of_o a_o master_n sometime_o will_v deliver_v himself_o by_o fly_v from_o he_o but_o the_o servant_n of_o sin_n where-away_a he_o shall_v he_o flee_v secum_fw-la trahit_fw-la dominum_fw-la suum_fw-la quocunque_fw-la fugerit_fw-la non_fw-la fugit_fw-la seipsam_fw-la mala_fw-la conscientia_fw-la 41._o he_o draw_v his_o oppressor_n with_o he_o flee_v where_o he_o will_v a_o evil_a conscience_n can_v flee_v from_o itself_o and_o as_o for_o a_o reward_n of_o his_o service_n where_o reward_n be_v it_o voluptas_fw-la transit●…_n peccatum_fw-la manet_fw-la praeterit_fw-la quod_fw-la delectabat_fw-la remansit_fw-la quod_fw-la pungat_fw-la the_o pleasure_n pass_v the_o sin_n abide_v still_o that_o be_v go_v which_o delight_v he_o and_o for_o which_o he_o sin_v that_o remain_v which_o disquiet_v he_o and_o torment_v he_o to_o wit_n guiltiness_n the_o fruit_n of_o his_o sin_n that_o be_v the_o worm_n which_o g●…aweth_v his_o conscience_n what_o shall_v we_o then_o do_v but_o cry_v out_o and_o confess_v with_o the_o same_o father_n o_o miserabilis_fw-la seruitus_fw-la peccat●…_n o_o miserable_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o every_o way_n comfortless_a service_n of_o sin_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a o_o happy_a joyful_a fruitful_a and_o every_o way_n most_o comfortable_a the_o service_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n yet_o concern_v this_o point_n there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n question_n to_o be_v move_v say_v not_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o disciple_n henceforth_o i_o call_v you_o not_o servant_n but_o friend_n how_o then_o be_v redeem_v and_o glorify_a 15._o saint_n call_v servant_n i_o answer_v this_o note_v their_o advancement_n to_o a_o new_a and_o high_a dignity_n but_o derogate_v not_o from_o their_o old_a debt-bound_a duty_n familiarity_n with_o god_n take_v not_o away_o reverence_v it_o it_o engender_v not_o as_o our_o proverb_n be_v contempt_n no_o there_o be_v none_o who_o reverence_v he_o more_o than_o they_o with_o who_o he_o be_v most_o familiar_a and_o no●…e_v more_o ready_a to_o serve_v he_o than_o they_o who_o have_v find_v he_o most_o merciful_a to_o they_o so_o these_o two_o style_n friend_n and_o servant_n be_v not_o repugnant_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o again_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v how_o serve_v they_o he_o for_o ever_o in_o his_o temple_n say_v not_o our_o saviour_n the_o servant_n abide_v not_o in_o the_o
the_o love_n humility_n and_o meekness_n of_o christ_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v know_v we_o be_v he_o such_o as_o bite_v one_o another_o and_o devour_v one_o another_o be_v as_o yet_o but_o carnal_a and_o stranger_n from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o jesus_n and_o he_o shall_v lead_v they_o to_o the_o fountain_n etc._n etc._n water_n water_n signify_v refresh_a joy_n which_o saint_n shall_v have_v there_o in_o great_a abundance_n he_o that_o 14._o drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v give_v he_o shall_v never_o thirst_v any_o more_o but_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v give_v he_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v up_o into_o eternal_a life_n the_o spring_a and_o flow_v of_o the_o water_n note_v the_o abundance_n of_o it_o according_a to_o that_o i_o be_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n 10._o and_o have_v it_o in_o abundance_n therefore_o be_v their_o exceed_a great_a joy_n call_v river_n of_o pleasure_n and_o 36._o again_o a_o pure_a river_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n proceed_v 1._o from_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n run_v through_o the_o street_n of_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n but_o here_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o fountain_n from_o which_o these_o water_n flow_v to_o show_v that_o our_o joy_n there_o shall_v not_o come_v mediate_o from_o the_o creature_n as_o we_o have_v say_v but_o immediate_o from_o god_n the_o author_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o our_o felicity_n shall_v lead_v they_o even_o in_o this_o life_n the_o lord_n understand_v lead_v us._n all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o all_o cry_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o send_v thy_o light_n and_o thy_o truth_n let_v they_o lead_v i_o and_o now_o we_o feel_v that_o he_o lead_v we_o monendo_fw-la &_o monendo_fw-la 3._o as_o we_o have_v show_v on_o the_o eight_o to_o the_o roman_n but_o how_o he_o shall_v govern_v we_o and_o lead_v we_o there_o how_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o lamb_n wherever_o he_o go_v we_o shall_v best_o know_v when_o we_o come_v there_o it_o be_v a_o joyful_a thing_n now_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o he_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o more_o joyful_a then_o si_fw-la sic_fw-la bone_fw-la es_fw-la 47._o quaerentibus_fw-la te_fw-la qualis_fw-la eris_fw-la assequentibus_fw-la since_o he_o be_v so_o good_a to_o they_o who_o seek_v he_o as_o we_o have_v all_o cause_n to_o confess_v how_o good_a will_v he_o be_v to_o they_o who_o find_v he_o and_o god_n shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n etc._n etc._n this_o glory_n manner_n of_o speech_n import_v a_o most_o comfortable_a change_n of_o their_o estate_n from_o misery_n and_o all_o cause_n of_o mourning_n to_o joy_n and_o all_o fullness_n of_o felicity_n and_o this_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n express_v by_o a_o most_o significant_a phrase_n when_o he_o say_v mortality_n shall_v 15._o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o immortality_n that_o be_v it_o shall_v be_v devour_v and_o utter_o abolish_v as_o if_o it_o have_v never_o be_v no_o footstep_n of_o mortality_n or_o misery_n shall_v be_v see_v there_o no_o voice_n of_o mourn_v hear_v there_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n by_o proper_a similitude_n similitude_n do_v illustrate_v this_o sicut_fw-la stilla_fw-la aquae_fw-la modico_fw-la infusa_fw-la vino_fw-la deficere_fw-la à_fw-la se_fw-la tota_fw-la videtur_fw-la dum_fw-la &_o saporem_fw-la vini_fw-la induit_fw-la &_o colorem_fw-la as_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n infuse_v into_o wine_n look_v no_o more_o like_a that_o which_o it_o be_v but_o deum_fw-la take_v on_o it_o both_o the_o taste_n and_o colour_n of_o the_o wine_n et_fw-la sicut_fw-la ferrum_fw-la ignitum_fw-la &_o candens_fw-la igni_fw-la simillimum_fw-la fit_a pristina_fw-la propriaque_fw-la forma_fw-la exutum_fw-la and_o as_o iron_n put_v in_o a_o hot_a burn_a fire_n become_v most_o like_a unto_o the_o fire_n and_o lose_v the_o old_a and_o proper_a form_n thereof_o et_fw-la sicut_fw-la solis_fw-la luce_fw-fr perfus●…s_fw-la aer_fw-la in_o eandem_fw-la transformatur_fw-la luminis_fw-la claritatem_fw-la ade●…_n ut_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la illuminatus_fw-la quam_fw-la lumen_fw-la ipsum_fw-la esse_fw-la videatur_fw-la and_o as_o the_o air_n when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v diffund_v through_o it_o be_v transform_v into_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o light_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v not_o so_o much_o enlighten_v as_o a_o light_n itself_o at_o midnight_n the_o air_n be_v a_o dark_a body_n in_o the_o day_n it_o be_v lightsome_a and_o look_n as_o if_o it_o be_v light_v itself_o so_o shall_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n glorify_v in_o heaven_n be_v change_v from_o that_o which_o they_o be_v now_o and_o transform_v into_o the_o similitude_n of_o that_o glory_n whereunto_o they_o shall_v be_v advance_v then_o always_o mourn_v here_o be_v meet_a for_o saint_n saint_n for_o how_o shall_v the_o lord_n wipe_v away_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n who_o never_o shed_v they_o and_o how_o shall_v he_o gather_v these_o tear_n into_o his_o bottle_n which_o thou_o never_o powr_v out_o the_o world_n count_v it_o a_o womanly_a affection_n to_o mourn_v but_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v bless_a be_v they_o who_o mourn_v now_o for_o they_o 4._o shall_v be_v comfort_v david_n be_v a_o very_a valiant_a man_n he_o slay_v the_o lion_n and_o overcome_v goliath_n the_o philistim_n and_o yet_o he_o water_v his_o bed_n with_o lord_n tear_n in_o the_o night_n and_o in_o the_o day_n mingle_v his_o cup_n with_o tear_n simon_n the_o pharisee_v at_o one_o time_n make_v 6._o a_o banquet_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o best_a delicate_n he_o have_v and_o marie_n give_v he_o a_o desert_n of_o tear_n from_o her_o penitent_a heart_n our_o lord_n be_v better_o please_v with_o marie_n her_o tear_n then_o with_o simon_n his_o delicate_n though_o we_o be_v not_o compass_v with_o many_o we_o misery_n and_o overload_v with_o a_o heavy_a burden_n of_o sin_n in_o both_o which_o we_o have_v great_a matter_n and_o cause_n of_o mourning_n yet_o our_o very_a absence_n from_o that_o great_a felicity_n which_o in_o this_o life_n we_o can_v enjoy_v shall_v move_v we_o to_o mourn_v non_fw-la satis_fw-la futura_fw-la 2._o gandia_fw-la concupiscis_fw-la si_fw-la ●…a_fw-la quotidie_fw-la non_fw-la postulas_fw-la cum_fw-la lachrymis_fw-la minus_fw-la tibi_fw-la not_o a_o sunt_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la renuit_fw-la consolari_fw-la anima_fw-la tua_fw-la don●…c_fw-la veniant_fw-la thou_o desire_v not_o as_o thou_o shall_v these_o joy_n to_o come_v if_o thou_o do_v not_o crave_v they_o every_o day_n with_o tear_n thou_o know_v they_o not_o if_o thy_o soul_n refuse_v not_o all_o other_o comfort_n till_o thou_o enjoy_v they_o to_o replenish_v thou_o fruitless_a and_o vain_a yea_o quick_o vanish_v be_v the_o great_a pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o senseless_a security_n be_v the_o age_n mother-sinne_n of_o this_o age_n the_o child_n of_o cain_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n learn_v how_o to_o work_v in_o brass_n and_o iron_n and_o man_n by_o their_o wit_n and_o ingene_a 4._o can_v make_v the_o hard_a metal_n receive_v impression_n but_o can_v in_o like_o manner_n molli●…ie_v their_o hard_a heart_n to_o receive_v the_o stamp_n of_o holy_a impression_n from_o the_o lord_n at_o the_o three_o stroke_n the_o rock_n render_v water_n unto_o moses_n but_o alas_o for_o many_o stroke_n will_v not_o our_o heart_n render_v tear_n of_o contrition_n to_o the_o lord_n it_o require_v a_o continual_a care_n to_o work_v upon_o the_o continual_o heart_n to_o labour_v it_o &_o make_v it_o soft_a that_o it_o may_v yield_v to_o the_o seal_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v the_o portraiture_n of_o his_o image_n if_o we_o in_o a_o good_a conscience_n use_v the_o mean_n diligent_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o let_v we_o want_v a_o blessing_n but_o will_v gracious_o perform_v unto_o his_o child_n that_o promise_v make_v in_o the_o new_a covenant_n i_o shall_v take_v the_o stony_a heart_n away_o from_o they_o and_o give_v they_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n to_o conclude_v all_o since_o we_o hear_v so_o great_a and_o glorious_a for_o thing_n speak_v of_o that_o city_n of_o our_o god_n that_o new_a and_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n both_o here_o and_o in_o the_o twenty_o one_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o this_o prophesic_n be_v it_o not_o a_o lamentable_a folly_n to_o forget_v zion_n and_o 137._o to_o sit_v down_o and_o sing_v by_o the_o river_n of_o babel_n wherein_o we_o be_v but_o captive_n shall_v we_o neglect_v that_o life_n for_o the_o love_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o we_o can_v enjoy_v here_o it_o be_v a_o pretty_a meditation_n of_o s._n basil_n if_o thou_o have_v sy_n this_o say_v he_o two_o child_n where_o of_o the_o young_a by_o certain_a knowledge_n be_v not_o able_a to_o live_v the_o elder_a again_o be_v most_o lively_o will_v thou_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o spend_v all_o thy_o ear_n &_o thy_o substance_n upon_o the_o
be_v call_v elder_n 1._o joh._n 2._o 1._o isaiah_n 65._o 20._o the_o white_a raiment_n of_o saint_n be_v their_o twofold_a righteousness_n 1_o one_o impute_v 2_o another_o inherent_a their_o crown_n note_v their_o royal_a dignity_n 1._o cor._n 9_o 26._o rom._n 8._o a_o twofold_a operation_n of_o god_n here_o be_v figure_v 1_o one_o terrible_a to_o his_o enemy_n compare_v to_o lightning_n psal._n 18._o 14._o 2_o to_o thunder_a psal._n 18._o 13._o exod._n 20._o amos_n 1._o 2._o mark_n 3._o psal._n 29._o 3._o su●…_n ca._n 5._o 3_o to_z voices_z psal._n 2._o 5._o the_o other_o gracious_a &_o comfortable_a to_o his_o own_o child_n mat._n 3._o 11._o act_n 2._o isaiah_n 11._o 2._o 1._o cor._n 12._o 4._o the_o glassy_a s●…a_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o this_o world_n revel_v 17._o 15._o the_o world_n sometime_o figure_v by_o the_o moon_n and_o sometime_o by_o the_o sea_n which_o be_v ever_o walter_v and_o never_o stand_v in_o o●…_n estate_n ester_n 7._o 2._o king_n 7._o it_o be_v crystalline_a transparent_a because_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o the_o lord_n heb._n 4._o 13._o job._n 22._o psal._n 139._o a_o dehortation_n from_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n 1._o cor._n 7._o 31._o ☜_o the_o best_a pleasure_n thereof_o be_v like_o the_o salt_n water_n of_o the_o sea_n angel_n describe_v 1._o from_o their_o place_n 2._o from_o their_o nature_n 3._o fron_n their_o number_n 4._o from_o their_o property_n 5._o from_o their_o function_n how_o by_o the_o four_o beast_n some_o understand_v the_o four_o evangelist_n but_o in_o truth_n they_o figure_v the_o company_n and_o order_n of_o principal_a angel_n this_o vision_n compare_v with_o the_o like_a in_o ezechiel_n will_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o understand_v ezech._n 1._o the_o four_o beast_n in_o the_o original_n be_v four_o live_a creature_n and_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o be_v cherubim_n ezech._n 10._o 20._o the_o place_n of_o these_o holy_a angel_n they_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n and_o round_a about_o it_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n be_v compass_v w●…th_n angel_n not_o for_o any_o need_n but_o to_o show_v his_o glory_n and_o to_o comfort_v his_o church_n 1._o king_n 10._o 20._o isaiah_n 37._o 36._o what_o angel_n be_v as_o concern_v their_o nature_n psal._n 104._o 4._o numb_a 16._o 22._o august_n enchirid_a cap._n 18._o of_o the_o number_n of_o angel_n dan._n 7._o 10._o psal._n 68_o heb._n 12._o 22._o the_o property_n of_o angel_n nazian_n orat_fw-la 2._o de_fw-la th●…o_fw-la how_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v eye_n before_o eye_n behind_o and_o eye_n within_o they_o ☞_o gregor_n moral_a lamentable_a be_v our_o estate_n for_o the_o want_n of_o this_o threefold_a sight_n why_o angel_n be_v represent_v by_o man_n lion_n bullock_n and_o eagle_n ezech._n 1._o the_o manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o the_o variety_n of_o his_o creature_n not_o in_o the_o great_a only_a but_o in_o the_o small_a also_o what_o assurance_n we_o have_v of_o good_a thing_n provide_v for_o we_o hereafter_o heb._n 11._o 3._o six_o wing_n be_v ascrybed_n to_o every_o one_o of_o these_o angil_n isaiah_n 6._o 2._o with_o two_o wing_n they_o cover_v their_o fac●…_n these_o be_v 1_o a_o humble_a estimation_n of_o themselves_o 2_o a_o reverend_a estimation_n of_o the_o lord_n chrysost._n in_o mat._n hom_n 26._o heavenly_a creature_n be_v most_o humble_a hereby_o be_v condemn_v pharisaical_a and_o popish_a spirit_n who_o dare_v stand_v up_o with_o uncover_v face_n and_o glory_n of_o their_o merit_n ber._n ser._n cont_n vitium_fw-la ingratitude_n gen._n 18._o chrysost._n in_o mat._n ●…om_n 26._o the_o two_o wing_n wherewith_o they_o fly_v 1_o their_o sublime_a disposition_n they_o be_v no_o creep_a thing_n 2_o their_o willing_a readiness_n to_o obey_v by_o the_o two_o wing_n bernard_n understand_v knowledge_n and_o devotion_n bern._n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la esaiae_n serm._n 4._o to_o strive_v to_o fly_v with_o one_o wing_n be_v the_o ready_a way_n to_o fall_v rom._n 1._o the_o wing_n wherewith_o they_o cover_v their_o foot_n be_v sanctity_n and_o modesty_n zach_n 1._o in_o the_o last_o place_n they_o be_v describe_v from_o their_o function_n they_o be_v not_o wea●…y_o in_o praise_v god_n 1._o thes._n 5._o 16_o 16_o 17_o 18._o prayer_n and_o praise_n be_v good_a part_n of_o divine_a worship_n but_o praise_v the_o most_o excellent_a of_o the_o two_o three_o thing_n in_o their_o song_n do_v they_o ascribe_v to_o the_o lord_n isaiah_n 6._o ang._n the_o side_n ad_fw-la pet._n cap._n 1._o 1_o holiness_n which_o be_v so_o proper_a to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v none_o so_o holy_a as_o the_o lord_n 2_o omnipotency_n consist_v in_o these_o two_o 1._o that_o he_o can_v do_v what_o hewil_n 2._o that_o against_o his_o nature_n and_o truth_n he_o can_v do_v nothing_o mouth_n of_o atheist_n who_o call_v god_n power_n in_o question_n bind_v up_o 2._o king_n 7._o 2._o weakness_n of_o saint_n help_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n his_o omnipotency_n gen._n 18._o numb_a 11._o 22._o esa._n 50._o 3._o papist_n abuse_v the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n in_o make_v it_o militant_a against_o his_o truth_n psal._n 78._o 41._o 3_o they_o ascribe_v to_o he_o the_o praise_n of_o eternity_n bern._n in_o cont._n scrm._n 31._o what_o great_a comfort_n come_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n his_o eternity_n eccles._n 1_o heb._n 1._o 11._o the_o song_n of_o angel_n be_v socond_v by_o the_o song_n of_o redeem_a saint_n 2._o cor._n 9_o 2._o thus_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v provoke_v another_o to_o plety_n in_o their_o song_n they_o give_v three_o thing_n to_o the_o lord_n rom._n 11._o 35._o great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o man_n his_o give_v to_o god_n &_o god_n give_v to_o man_n heb._n 13._o 1._o chro._n 29._o 14._o no_o dishonour_n to_o the_o most_o honourable_a creature_n to_o kneel_v to_o the_o lord_n psal._n 95._o 6._o the_o true_a church_n worship_v no_o creature_n neither_o angel_n not_o man_n gal._n 4._o 8._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o give_v to_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o salvation_n psal._n 115._o 1._o creation_n be_v a_o short_a providence_n and_o providence_n a_o long_a creation_n heb._n 1._o 3._o creation_n common_a to_o all_o creature_n not_o so_o the_o comfort_n of_o creation_n what_o reason_n we_o have_v to_o serve_v god_n for_o our_o creation_n ephes._n 2._o loth_n shall_v we_o be_v to_o displease_v the_o lord_n who_o make_v we_o for_o his_o own_o pleasure_n psal._n 104._o 31._o gen._n 1._o gen._n 6._o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o preparato●…ie_a vision_n contain_v a_o description_n of_o god_n the_o redeemer_n reveal_v thing_n to_o come_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o church_n psal._n 76._o 10._o the_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n the_o familiarity_n of_o god_n with_o his_o saint_n once_o begin_v still_o increase_v numb_a 22._o gen._n 39_o reu._n 1._o 9_o gen._n 27._o 33._o we_o walk_v not_o here_o by_o sight_n but_o by_o say_v 2._o cor._n 5._o 7._o how_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o book_n ester_n 6._o 1._o in_o it_o allusion_n be_v make_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o king_n who_o have_v their_o register_n this_o book_n can_v be_v the_o old_a testament_n other_o strange_a opinion_n concern_v this_o book_n but_o in_o truth_n the_o book_n be_v this_o same_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n book_n in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n 1_o metaphorical_a and_o these_o be_v either_o universal_a or_o special_a psal._n 139._o 16._o universal_a be_v two_o special_a be_v al._n so_o two_o gen._n 32._o 32._o malach._n 3._o 16._o 2_o the_o other_o sort_n of_o book_n be_v material_a the_o form_n of_o book_n use_v among_o the_o ancient_n different_a from_o we_o plin._n lib._n 3._o epist_n ezech._n 2._o 9_o carthus_n what_o mean_v the_o write_n of_o this_o book_n without_o &_o within_o the_o book_n be_v seal_v for_o surety_n and_o secrecy_n dan._n 6._o 8._o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n pretend_v by_o papist_n they_o look_v to_o the_o seal_n wherewith_o the_o book_n be_v close_v but_o not_o to_o the_o lamb_n who_o open_v they_o psal._n 119._o 130._o in_o book_n of_o scripture_n write_v for_o our_o instruction_n in_o the_o faith_n god_n speak_v plain_o aug._n the_o doct_n chr._n lib._n 2._o c._n 9_o lactant._n l._n 6._o c._n 21._o this_o pretext_n of_o obscurity_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v but_o a_o cover_n of_o their_o mislike_v chrysost._n hom_n 3._o de_fw-fr lazaro_n it_o be_v christ_n his_o singular_a glory_n none_o but_o he_o can_v open_v this_o book_n the_o office_n of_o christ_n be_v 3_o kingly_a priestly_a and_o prophetical_a the_o last_o and_o least_o of_o the_o 3._o can_v be_v do_v by_o none_o but_o by_o himself_o papist_n derogate_v from_o
the_o perfection_n of_o christ_n his_o prophetical_a office_n council_n trident._n ses._n 2._o but_o let_v they_o tell_v who_o can_v 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o jesus_n have_v not_o 〈◊〉_d justin._n ●…xord_n in_o tryph._n ir●…n_n lib._n 2._o c._n 47._o antiquity_n plead_v the_o perfection_n of_o holy_a scripture_n ibid._n basil._n in_o ser._n de_fw-fr fidei_fw-la cons●…nsit_fw-la but_o most_o blasphemous_a be_v they_o in_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v not_o perfect_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o high_a priest_n the_o negative_a answer_n exclude_v all_o creature_n jesuit_n contrary_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n expound_v this_o of_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o no_o less_o ridiculous_a be_v they_o in_o expound_v these_o under_o the_o earth_n of_o their_o purgatory_n how_o all_o kind_a christian_n be_v affect_v with_o the_o least_o loss_n and_o trouble_n which_o befall_v the_o church_n pro._n 11._o 14._o example_n hereof_o in_o old_a eli._n 1._o sam._n 4_o 18._o in_o his_o daughter_n 1._o sam._n 4._o 20_o 21_o in_o nehemiah_n nehem._n 1._o 2._o nehem._n 2._o 1._o amos_n 6._o 1_o 6._o to_o christian_n the_o open_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v a_o joy_n to_o antichristian_n a_o grief_n consolation_n come_v to_o the_o godly_a after_o their_o mourning_n math._n 9_o 17._o cant._n 1._o 1._o psal._n 126._o 6._o all_o comfort_n be_v in_o christ_n none_o without_o he_o in_o the_o creature_n the_o description_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n tertul._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n 〈◊〉_d aug._n the_o civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o hilar._n lib._n 7._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la ●…om_n why_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o lion_n 1._o pet._n 5._o 8._o rom._n 16._o 20._o josua_n 5._o 9_o 10._o and_o yet_o such_o a_o lion_n as_o be_v also_o a_o lamb_n why_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o root_n of_o david_n esa._n 11._o 1._o &_o 10._o how_o the_o messia_n be_v the_o root_n of_o jesse_n and_o jesse_n the_o root_n of_o the_o messia_n math._n 22._o 43._o psal._n 110._o 1._o what_o comfort_n we_o have_v that_o our_o lord_n be_v make_v man_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n once_o sinful_a theodoret._n dialog_n 1._o cap._n 26._o cap._n 25._o it_o assure_v we_o that_o at_o length_n he_o shall_v separate_v our_o nature_n from_o all_o sin_n ephes._n 5._o 27._o papist_n not_o understand_v this_o do_v foolish_o affirm_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v without_o all_o sin_n bern._n 〈◊〉_d 174._o ibid._n a_o new_a doctrine_n and_o a_o false_a flat_o convince_v by_o antiquity_n psal._n 51._o 5._o john_n 14._o aug._n tract_n in_o joan._n 41._o cap._n 8._o anselm_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o job_n 14._o 4._o many_o christian_n by_o information_n not_o by_o inspiration_n 1._o cor._n 1._o 6._o great_a comfort_n that_o our_o elder_a brother_n clothe_v with_o our_o nature_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n christ_n figure_v by_o a_o lamb_n to_o express_v his_o meekness_n &_o patience_n in_o suffering_n esa._n 53._o 7._o and_o next_o to_o express_v the_o great_a benefit_n that_o from_o he_o redound_v to_o us._n christ_n be_v indeed_o and_o real_o slay_v the_o manner_n of_o speech_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v slay_v import_v that_o he_o be_v sure_o slay_v joh._n 1._o 14._o ●…_n cor._n 3._o 18._o christ_n be_v slay_v but_o so_o that_o he_o live_v again_o rom._n 1._o 4._o why_o he_o appear_v after_o his_o resurrection_n with_o the_o scar_n of_o his_o wound_n this_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o impotency_n in_o he_o but_o rather_o prove_v his_o mighty_a power_n macar_n hom_n 11._o bern._n the_o passione_n domini_fw-la horn_n in_o scripture_n signisie_n power_n for_o these_o se●…_n horn_n be_v ascribe_v to_o christ._n zach._n 1._o sometime_o one_o horn_n be_v attribute_v unto_o christ._n psal._n 92._o 10._o three_o property_n of_o the_o unicorn_n his_o horn_n seven_o eye_n ascribe_v to_o christ_n to_o show_v his_o most_o perfect_a wisdom_n he_o have_v eye_n of_o providece_n these_o look_n to_o all_o and_o eye_n of_o grace_n these_o look_n to_o his_o own_o child_n zach._n 4._o 7._o psal._n 147._o 20._o christ_n receive_v fullness_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v give_v to_o his_o church_n joh._n 3._o 34._o hereof_o come_v the_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n because_o it_o be_v furnish_v from_o the_o heaven_n reu._n 1._o 16._o ●…ach_n 4._o 2_o 3._o this_o be_v figure_v in_o zachary_n his_o vision_n of_o the_o golden_a candles●…lcke_n psal._n 83._o 4._o christ_n only_o authorize_v to_o be_v the_o great_a and_o public_a doctor_n of_o his_o church_n math._n 17._o exod._n 32._o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n contain_v a_o threefold_a thanksgiving_n 1_o of_o angel_n 2_o of_o saint_n redeem_v 3_o of_o all_o creature_n this_o verse_n vexe●…h_v they_o who_o expound_v the_o some_o and_o twenty_o elder_n to_o be_v four_o and_o twenty_o book_n the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n prove_v in_o that_o angel_n do_v worship_n he_o heb._n 1._o 5._o four_o circumstance_n to_o be_v consider_v in_o this_o song_n of_o angel_n 1_o who_o be_v the_o musician_n figure_v by_o four_o beast_n gen._n 3._o 24._o angel_n and_o man_n at_o variance_n before_o now_o sing_v one_o song_n colos._n 1._o 20._o yea_o creature_n of_o most_o contrary_a kind_n by_o christ_n be_v make_v to_o concord_n this_o be_v that_o wonderful_a peace_n foretell_v by_o esaiah_n fulfil_v by_o messia_n esa._n 11._o 6._o clemens_n alex._n in_o exbor_n ad_fw-la g●…es_fw-la miserable_a be_v they_o who_o now_o under_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v move_v to_o peace_n 2_o the_o second_o circumstance_n note_n their_o gesture_n in_o praise_v god_n as_o it_o be_v represent_v to_o saint_n john_n 2._o cor._n 6._o 20._o rom._n 6._o bodily_a humiliation_n require_v in_o the_o service_n of_o our_o god_n &_o how_o it_o be_v comfortable_a for_o ourselves_o so_o to_o do_v 1._o sam._n 2._o 30._o 1._o cor._n 15._o 43._o rom._n 8._o 11._o 3_o the_o instrument_n wherewith_o they_o praise_v god_n 1._o harp_n 2._o vial_n every_o angel_n have_v his_o instrument_n for_o god_n praise_n learn_v every_o man_n to_o do_v the_o like_a joh._n 1._o gen._n 8._o 21._o psal._n 18._o psal._n 125._o 5._o their_o harp_n do_v note_v two_o thing_n 1_o the_o great_a joy_n they_o have_v in_o praise_v god_n mat._n 17._o 1._o sam._n 16._o 23._o 2_o the_o sweet_a harmony_n &_o consent_n that_o be_v among_o they_o psal._n 133._o 1._o act._n 1._o 1._o cor._n 1._o sin_n of_o this_o age_n that_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n be_v break_v by_o they_o who_o profess_v one_o faith_n the_o right_a harp_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v his_o heart_n psal._n 57_o then_o be_v the_o heart_n well_o tune_v when_o it_o answer_v the_o lord_n in_o obedience_n to_o his_o law_n this_o a_o christian_n do_v in_o perfection_n of_o part_n not_o of_o degree_n bastard_z professor_n reprove_v jam._n 2._o 10._o they_o answer_v the_o lord_n as_o the_o echo_n do_v a_o man_n voice_n with_o their_o harp_n they_o have_v also_o golden_a vial_n the_o heart_n shall_v be_v like_o a_o vial_n and_o wherein_o cant._n 4._o 12._o it_o shall_v be_v golden_a that_o be_v holy_a and_o pure_a 2._o tim._n 2._o 8._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 20._o prayer_n of_o saint_n figure_v by_o sweet_a odour_n psal._n 141._o 2._o gen._n 8._o 21._o both_o the_o bride_n and_o bridegroom_n have_v their_o own_o odour_n revel_v 8._o 3._o christ_n have_v twofold_a odour_n one_o that_o ascend_v to_o god_n his_o father_n cant._n 1._o another_o that_o descend_v to_o his_o brethren_n how_o the_o smell_n of_o these_o odour_n shall_v allure_v us._n bernard_n how_o the_o church_n have_v also_o twofold_a odour_n 1_o odour_n of_o contrition_n and_o what_o be_v the_o ingredient_n thereof_o 2_o odour_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o what_o be_v the_o ingredient_n thereof_o this_o place_n abuse_v by_o papist_n to_o defend_v prayer_n unto_o saint_n depart_v rhemist_n four_o sort_n of_o prayer_n mention_v in_o holy_a scripture_n 1._o tim._n 2._o of_o these_o four_o two_o only_o be_v ascribe_v to_o saint_n triumphant_a saint_n triumphant_a want_n two_o thing_n for_o which_o they_o pray_v 1_o they_o want_v their_o body_n 2_o they_o want_v their_o brethren_n heb._n 11._o 40._o without_o these_o they_o can_v be_v perfect_v reve._n 6._o they_o can_v pray_v for_o our_o particular_a necessity_n this_o same_o place_n by_o three_o argument_n improve_v prayer_n to_o saint_n exod._n 30._o 1_o incense_n may_v be_v make_v no_o other_o way_n than_o god_n command_v so_o prayer_n etc._n etc._n psalm_n 50._o math._n 6._o 9_o rom._n 8._o 2_o incense_n may_v not_o be_v burn_v but_o upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n so_o prayer_n may_v not_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o any_o but_o jesus_n math._n 17._o 5._o 3_o incense_n make_v for_o the_o lord_n may_v not_o be_v apply_v to_o any_o but_o to_o the_o